Selected quad for the lemma: love_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
love_n act_n love_v soul_n 2,538 5 5.2551 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27006 Reliquiæ Baxterianæ, or, Mr. Richard Baxters narrative of the most memorable passages of his life and times faithfully publish'd from his own original manuscript by Matthew Sylvester. Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691.; Sylvester, Matthew, 1636 or 7-1708. 1696 (1696) Wing B1370; ESTC R16109 1,288,485 824

There are 34 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

through_o all_o my_o life_n to_o be_v a_o unvaluable_a mercy_n to_o i_o for_o 1._o it_o great_o weaken_v temptation_n 2._o it_o keep_v i_o in_o a_o great_a contempt_n of_o the_o world_n 3._o it_o teach_v i_o high_o to_o esteem_v of_o time_n so_o that_o if_o any_o of_o it_o pass_v away_o in_o idleness_n or_o unprofitableness_n it_o be_v so_o long_a a_o pain_n and_o burden_n to_o my_o mind_n so_o that_o i_o must_v say_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o my_o most_o wise_a conductor_n that_o time_n have_v still_o seem_v to_o i_o much_o more_o precious_a than_o gold_n or_o any_o earthly_a gain_n and_o its_o minute_n have_v not_o be_v despise_v nor_o have_v i_o be_v much_o tempt_v to_o any_o of_o the_o sin_n which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o pastime_n since_o i_o understand_v my_o work_n 4._o it_o make_v i_o study_v and_o preach_v thing_n necessary_a and_o a_o little_a stir_v up_o my_o sluggish_a heart_n to_o speak_v to_o sinner_n with_o some_o compassion_n as_o a_o die_a man_n to_o die_a men._n these_o with_o the_o rest_n which_o i_o mention_v before_o when_o i_o speak_v of_o my_o infirmity_n be_v the_o benefit_n which_o god_n afford_v i_o by_o affliction_n i_o humble_o bless_v his_o gracious_a providence_n who_o give_v i_o his_o treasure_n in_o a_o earthen_a vessel_n and_o train_v i_o up_o in_o the_o school_n of_o affliction_n and_o teach_v i_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n so_o soon_o that_o i_o may_v be_v rather_o theologus_fw-la crucis_fw-la as_o luther_n speak_v than_o theologus_fw-la gloriae_fw-la and_o a_o cross-bearer_n than_o a_o cross-maker_n or_o imposer_n §_o 33._o at_o one_o time_n above_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v under_o a_o new_a and_o unusual_a distemper_n which_o put_v i_o upon_o the_o present_a expectation_n of_o my_o change_n and_o go_v for_o comfort_n to_o the_o promise_v as_o i_o be_v use_v the_o tempter_n strong_o assault_v my_o faith_n and_o will_v have_v draw_v i_o towards_o infidelity_n itself_o till_o i_o be_v ready_a to_o enter_v into_o the_o ministry_n all_o my_o trouble_n have_v be_v raise_v by_o the_o hardness_n of_o my_o heart_n and_o the_o doubt_n of_o my_o own_o sincerity_n but_o now_o all_o these_o begin_v to_o vanish_v and_o never_o much_o return_v to_o this_o day_n and_o instead_o of_o these_o i_o be_v now_o assault_v with_o more_o pernicious_a temptation_n especial_o to_o question_v the_o certain_a truth_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o also_o the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o these_o temptation_n assault_v i_o not_o as_o they_o do_v the_o melancholy_a with_o horrid_a vex_a importunity_n but_o by_o pretence_n of_o sober_a reason_n they_o will_v have_v draw_v i_o to_o a_o settle_a doubt_v of_o christianity_n and_o here_o i_o find_v my_o own_o miscarriage_n and_o the_o great_a mercy_n of_o god_n my_o miscarriage_n in_o that_o i_o have_v so_o long_o neglect_v the_o well_o settle_v of_o my_o foundation_n while_o i_o have_v bestow_v so_o much_o time_n in_o the_o superstructure_n and_o the_o applicatory_a part_n for_o have_v take_v it_o for_o a_o intolerable_a evil_n once_o to_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v i_o have_v either_o take_v it_o for_o a_o certainty_n upon_o trust_n or_o take_v up_o with_o common_a reason_n of_o it_o which_o i_o have_v never_o well_o consider_v digest_v or_o make_v my_o own_o insomuch_o as_o when_o this_o temptation_n come_v it_o seem_v at_o first_o to_o answer_v and_o enervate_a all_o the_o former_a reason_n of_o my_o feeble_a faith_n which_o make_v i_o take_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o it_o set_v before_o i_o such_o mountain_n of_o difficulty_n in_o the_o incarnation_n the_o person_n of_o christ_n his_o undertake_n and_o performance_n with_o the_o scripture_n chronology_n history_n and_o style_n etc._n etc._n which_o have_v stall_v and_o overwhelm_v i_o if_o god_n have_v not_o be_v my_o strength_n and_o here_o i_o see_v much_o of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o he_o let_v not_o out_o these_o terrible_a and_o dangerous_a temptation_n upon_o i_o while_o i_o be_v weak_a and_o in_o the_o infancy_n of_o my_o faith_n for_o than_o i_o have_v never_o be_v able_a to_o withstand_v they_o but_o faith_n be_v like_o a_o tree_n who_o top_n be_v small_a while_o the_o root_n be_v young_a and_o shallow_a and_o therefore_o as_o then_o it_o have_v but_o small_a root_n so_o be_v it_o not_o liable_a to_o the_o shake_a wind_n and_o tempest_n as_o the_o big_a and_o high-grown_a tree_n be_v but_o as_o the_o top_n grow_v high_a so_o the_o root_n at_o once_o grow_v great_a and_o deep_o fix_v to_o cause_v it_o to_o endure_v its_o great_a assault_n though_o former_o i_o be_v wont_a when_o any_o such_o temptation_n come_v to_o cast_v it_o aside_o as_o fit_a to_o be_v abhor_v than_o consider_v of_o yet_o now_o this_o will_v not_o give_v i_o satisfaction_n but_o i_o be_v fain_o to_o dig_v to_o the_o very_a foundation_n and_o serious_o to_o examine_v the_o reason_n of_o christianity_n and_o to_o give_v a_o hear_n to_o all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v against_o it_o that_o so_o my_o faith_n may_v be_v indeed_o my_o own_o and_o at_o last_o i_o find_v that_o nil_fw-la tam_fw-la certum_fw-la quamquod_fw-la ex_fw-la dublo_fw-mi certum_fw-la nothing_o be_v so_o firm_o believe_v as_o that_o which_o have_v be_v sometime_o doubt_v of_o §_o 34._o in_o the_o storm_n of_o this_o temptation_n i_o question_v a_o while_n whether_o i_o be_v indeed_o a_o christian_a or_o a_o infidel_n and_o whether_o faith_n can_v consist_v with_o such_o doubt_n as_o i_o be_v conscious_a of_o for_o i_o have_v read_v in_o many_o papist_n and_o protestant_n that_o faith_n have_v certainty_n and_o be_v more_o than_o a_o opinion_n and_o that_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v live_v a_o godly_a life_n from_o the_o bare_a apprehension_n of_o the_o probability_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v it_o will_v not_o save_v he_o as_o be_v no_o true_a godliness_n or_o faith_n but_o my_o judgement_n close_v with_o the_o reason_n of_o dr._n iackson_n determination_n of_o this_o case_n which_o support_v i_o much_o that_o as_o in_o the_o very_o assent_v act_n of_o faith_n there_o may_v be_v such_o weakness_n as_o may_v make_v we_o cry_v lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n we_o believe_v lord_n help_v our_o belief_n so_o when_o faith_n and_o unbelief_n be_v in_o their_o conflict_n it_o be_v the_o effect_n which_o must_v show_v we_o which_o of_o they_o be_v victorious_a and_o that_o he_o that_o have_v so_o much_o faith_n as_o will_v cause_v he_o to_o deny_v himself_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o forsake_v all_o the_o profit_n honour_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n have_v a_o save_a faith_n how_o weak_a soever_o for_o god_n can_v condemn_v the_o soul_n that_o true_o love_v and_o seek_v he_o and_o those_o that_o christ_n bring_v to_o persevere_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n he_o bring_v to_o salvation_n and_o there_o be_v divers_a thing_n that_o in_o this_o assault_n prove_v great_a assistance_n to_o my_o faith_n 1._o that_o the_o be_v and_o attribute_n of_o god_n be_v so_o clear_a to_o i_o that_o he_o be_v to_o my_o intellect_n what_o the_o sun_n be_v to_o my_o eye_n by_o which_o i_o see_v itself_o and_o all_o thing_n and_o he_o seem_v mad_a to_o i_o that_o question_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n that_o any_o man_n shall_v dream_v that_o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o a_o conflux_n of_o irrational_a atom_n and_o reason_n come_v from_o that_o which_o have_v no_o reason_n or_o that_o man_n or_o any_o inferior_a be_v be_v independent_a or_o that_o all_o the_o be_v power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n which_o we_o converse_v with_o have_v not_o a_o cause_n which_o in_o be_v power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n do_v excel_v all_o that_o which_o it_o have_v cause_v in_o the_o world_n and_o have_v not_o all_o that_o formaliter_fw-la vel_fw-la eminenter_fw-la in_o itself_o which_o it_o communicate_v to_o all_o the_o creature_n these_o and_o all_o the_o supposition_n of_o the_o atheist_n have_v ever_o since_o be_v so_o visible_o foolish_a and_o shameful_a to_o my_o apprehension_n that_o i_o scarce_o find_v a_o capacity_n in_o myself_o of_o doubt_v of_o they_o and_o whenever_o the_o tempter_n have_v join_v any_o thing_n against_o these_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o temptation_n the_o rest_n have_v be_v the_o easy_a overcome_v because_o of_o the_o overwhelm_a cogent_a evidence_n of_o a_o deity_n which_o be_v always_o before_o the_o eye_n of_o my_o soul_n 2._o and_o it_o help_v i_o much_o to_o discern_v that_o this_o god_n must_v needs_o be_v relate_v to_o we_o as_o our_o owner_n
the_o enclose_v wish_v i_o know_v how_o to_o requite_v your_o love_n and_o answer_v that_o favour_n i_o find_v with_o you_o in_o your_o large_a letter_n which_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a to_o us-ward_n but_o of_o much_o use_n the_o lord_n requite_v your_o labour_n of_o love_n i_o only_o redouble_v my_o request_n for_o a_o interest_n in_o your_o prayer_n that_o god_n will_v deliver_v my_o dear_a husband_n from_o all_o his_o fear_n and_o guide_v he_o by_o his_o light_n our_o god_n will_v hear_v who_o keep_v covenant_n and_o mercy_n for_o ever_o with_o those_o that_o fear_v he_o i_o rest_v sir_n your_o sister_n and_o lover_n in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n b._n l._n sept._n 20._o 1658._o for_o mr._n rich._n baxter_n minister_n at_o kidderminster_n dear_a brother_n as_o sure_a as_o love_n be_v a_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o character_n of_o a_o saint_n yea_o the_o more_o excellent_a way_n and_o as_o terminate_v on_o he_o who_o we_o love_v in_o the_o saint_n be_v the_o most_o high_a and_o noble_a grace_n as_o be_v the_o beginning_n and_o end_n the_o spring_n of_o all_o other_o holy_a affection_n and_o action_n and_o the_o enjoin_v act_n that_o be_v next_o our_o end_n so_o far_o be_v that_o state_n to_o you_o a_o grow_a state_n in_o which_o you_o increase_v in_o holy_a love_n and_o so_o sure_o be_v that_o a_o decline_a state_n in_o which_o your_o charity_n be_v straighten_v and_o diminish_v and_o as_o sure_o be_v that_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n that_o lead_v to_o a_o universal_a love_n of_o saint_n and_o that_o against_o christ_n which_o be_v against_o it_o it_o be_v not_o the_o least_o grief_n of_o my_o own_o soul_n that_o in_o the_o eager_a defence_n of_o that_o which_o still_o i_o judge_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n i_o have_v do_v any_o thing_n prejudicial_a to_o my_o own_o or_o brethren_n charity_n upon_o perusal_n i_o now_o find_v that_o many_o of_o my_o speech_n in_o my_o book_n of_o infant_n baptism_n have_v be_v too_o provoke_v of_o which_o i_o hearty_o repent_v though_o i_o dare_v not_o of_o the_o doctrine_n the_o frame_n of_o our_o affection_n do_v much_o advantage_n or_o disadvantage_n our_o judgement_n and_o experience_n be_v a_o help_n to_o both_o this_o i_o perceive_v you_o have_v find_v as_o well_o as_o i_o all_o holy_a truth_n must_v be_v entertain_v with_o mix_a affection_n with_o sorrow_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o we_o have_v do_v against_o they_o and_o with_o love_n and_o joy_n and_o gratitude_n to_o the_o bountiful_a revealer_n of_o they_o these_o that_o you_o here_o enumerate_v as_o reveal_v to_o you_o be_v very_o weighty_a because_o of_o such_o a_o practical_a nature_n and_o public_a use_n and_o ergo_fw-la you_o must_v be_v true_a to_o they_o and_o use_v they_o according_o they_o be_v such_o as_o leave_v no_o room_n for_o doubt_v as_o bear_v their_o testimony_n so_o legible_a in_o their_o forehead_n this_o be_v conclude_v that_o they_o be_v certain_a truth_n it_o may_v much_o help_v you_o to_o judge_v of_o your_o follow_a trouble_n i_o shall_v reduce_v all_o that_o i_o have_v to_o say_v for_o resolution_n to_o these_o proposition_n 1._o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o the_o trouble_v of_o your_o own_o spirit_n be_v the_o stand_a rule_n by_o which_o you_o must_v judge_v of_o duty_n and_o sin_n you_o can_v know_v either_o by_o your_o trouble_n immediate_o but_o as_o they_o awaken_v or_o help_v you_o to_o understand_v that_o word_n 2._o it_o be_v ergo_fw-la most_o certain_a that_o none_o of_o your_o trouble_n shall_v in_o the_o least_o measure_n move_v you_o from_o the_o certain_a truth_n which_o by_o the_o light_n of_o this_o word_n have_v be_v make_v know_v to_o you_o all_o the_o trouble_n in_o the_o world_n will_v not_o alter_v scripture_n and_o make_v truth_n to_o be_v no_o truth_n you_o must_v not_o once_o offer_v to_o try_v scripture_n truth_n by_o your_o feeling_n but_o your_o feeling_n by_o these_o truth_n 3._o you_o must_v therefore_o first_o see_v whether_o you_o obey_v the_o truth_n reveal_v to_o you_o which_o plain_o require_v you_o first_o to_o manifest_a repentance_n for_o so_o much_o breach_n of_o truth_n or_o unity_n or_o chrity_n as_o you_o have_v see_v yourself_o guilty_a of_o 2._o and_o to_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o same_o no_o more_o now_o whether_o you_o live_v in_o that_o sin_n or_o out_o of_o it_o i_o leave_v to_o you_o to_o judge_v and_o no_o doubt_n but_o it_o be_v your_o duty_n to_o do_v your_o utmost_a to_o draw_v all_o those_o out_o of_o it_o who_o you_o have_v encourage_v in_o it_o and_o as_o many_o more_o as_o you_o can_v there_o be_v but_o these_o two_o question_n then_o before_o you_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o your_o trouble_n and_o how_o you_o shall_v dispose_v of_o yourself_o for_o the_o future_a and_o to_o the_o first_o i_o answer_v in_o this_o four_o proposition_n though_o we_o know_v in_o general_a that_o sin_n be_v the_o deserve_a cause_n and_o god_n wisdom_n and_o love_n the_o dispose_n cause_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o find_v out_o the_o particular_a sin_n nor_o the_o particular_a design_n of_o love_n but_o the_o former_a be_v the_o more_o easy_a by_o the_o help_n of_o scripture_n which_o show_v we_o our_o sin_n more_o full_o than_o god_n future_a intend_a work_n 5._o but_o as_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o no_o providence_n be_v to_o be_v interpret_v against_o a_o precept_n so_o as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v conjecture_v at_o this_o distance_n your_o trouble_n be_v most_o likely_a to_o arise_v from_o these_o connex_v cause_n 1._o from_o some_o melancholy_n that_o have_v get_v advantage_n of_o your_o head_n by_o the_o thoughtfulness_n perplexity_n and_o the_o first_o actual_a disquietment_n 2._o from_o satan_n temptation_n work_v on_o this_o advantage_n but_o of_o the_o first_o i_o be_o no_o competent_a judge_n because_o distant_a but_o i_o strong_o suspect_v it_o by_o long_a experience_n in_o multitude_n of_o that_o distemper_n who_o few_o of_o they_o will_v believe_v that_o they_o have_v it_o themselves_o but_o of_o the_o second_o i_o be_o more_o confident_a satan_n can_v trouble_v we_o when_o he_o will_v but_o 1._o when_o sin_n have_v procure_v he_o a_o permission_n and_o 2._o when_o some_o melancholy_a or_o disquietment_n have_v give_v he_o a_o advantage_n i_o have_v meet_v with_o few_o person_n that_o ever_o fall_v into_o any_o calamity_n by_o sin_n but_o satan_n do_v very_o much_o trouble_v they_o when_o they_o attempt_v the_o mean_n of_o their_o recovery_n the_o disquietment_n and_o horror_n that_o seize_v upon_o most_o ungodly_a person_n when_o they_o be_v about_o come_v home_o by_o christ_n may_v be_v from_o god_n principal_o but_o from_o satan_n as_o the_o instrument_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o as_o permit_v to_o try_v they_o whenever_o any_o escape_n any_o notable_a snare_n of_o satan_n in_o state_n or_o fact_n usual_o satan_n roar_v and_o rage_v to_o hinder_v they_o if_o possible_a till_o the_o escape_n be_v make_v and_o then_o god_n meet_v they_o with_o further_o eight_o and_o love_n pharaoh_n follow_v they_o into_o the_o red_a sea_n and_o god_n receive_v they_o and_o put_v a_o song_n of_o praise_n into_o their_o mouth_n on_o the_o dry_a land_n but_o this_o first_o question_n be_v not_o such_o as_o you_o need_v much_o to_o stick_v at_o you_o may_v easy_o see_v for_o what_o sin_n its_o like_a you_o shall_v have_v this_o affliction_n or_o if_o you_o can_v not_o after_o a_o faithful_a search_n get_v rid_v of_o all_o and_o sweep_v as_o clean_o as_o possible_o you_o can_v and_o then_o you_o will_v remove_v that_o sin_n with_o the_o rest_n the_o resolve_v of_o the_o next_o question_n be_v your_o principal_a business_n which_o be_v to_o know_v now_o where_o your_o duty_n lie_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v for_o when_o once_o you_o be_v settle_v in_o the_o way_n of_o duty_n peace_n will_v return_v and_o the_o dark_a face_n of_o your_o now_o disconsolate_a soul_n be_v clear_v up_o unless_o any_o deep_a melancholy_n or_o unusual_a providence_n shall_v continue_v your_o trouble_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v not_o very_o easy_a to_o see_v the_o way_n of_o your_o duty_n to_o the_o end_n but_o part_n of_o it_o be_v very_o easy_a 1._o that_o you_o shall_v obey_v the_o light_n that_o god_n have_v manifest_v to_o you_o and_o help_v to_o communicate_v catholic_n principle_n and_o affection_n to_o all_o your_o people_n to_o the_o utmost_a of_o your_o power_n this_o be_v certain_a and_o do_v all_o that_o you_o be_v able_a to_o cure_v uncharitable_a divide_v principle_n or_o disposition_n 2._o that_o you_o may_v not_o live_v in_o a_o practice_n contrary_a to_o your_o doctrine_n be_v as_o plain_a and_o ergo_fw-la may_v not_o be_v guilty_a of_o continue_v a_o divide_a church_n though_o you_o may_v prudent_o observe_v the_o
though_o fear_v without_o love_n be_v not_o a_o state_n of_o save_v grace_n and_o great_a love_n to_o the_o world_n than_o to_o god_n be_v not_o consistent_a with_o sincerity_n yet_o a_o little_a predominant_a love_n prevail_v against_o worldly_a love_n conjunct_a with_o a_o far_o great_a measure_n of_o fear_n may_v be_v a_o state_n of_o special_a grace_n and_o that_o fear_v be_v a_o easy_a and_o irresistible_a passion_n do_v oft_o obscure_a that_o measure_n of_o love_n which_o be_v indeed_o within_o we_o and_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o believer_n grow_v up_o by_o degree_n from_o the_o more_o troublesome_a but_o safe_a operation_n of_o fear_n to_o the_o more_o high_a and_o excellent_a operation_n of_o complacential_a love_n even_o as_o it_o have_v more_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o heavenly_a life_n which_o it_o approach_v and_o that_o it_o be_v long_o before_o love_n be_v sensible_o predominant_a in_o respect_n of_o fear_n that_o be_v of_o self-love_n and_o self-preservation_n though_o at_o the_o first_o it_o be_v predominant_a against_o worldly_a love_n and_o i_o find_v that_o my_o hearty_a love_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o my_o desire_n to_o be_v more_o holy_a and_o especial_o the_o hatred_n of_o my_o heart_n for_o love_a god_n no_o more_o and_o my_o love_n to_o love_v he_o and_o be_v please_v to_o he_o be_v not_o without_o some_o love_n to_o himself_o though_o it_o work_v more_o sensible_o on_o his_o near_a image_n 4._o another_o of_o my_o doubt_n be_v because_o my_o grief_n and_o humiliation_n be_v no_o great_a and_o because_o i_o can_v weep_v no_o more_o for_o this_o but_o i_o understand_v at_o last_o that_o god_n break_v not_o all_o man_n heart_n alike_o and_o that_o the_o gradual_a proceed_n of_o his_o grace_n may_v be_v one_o cause_n and_o my_o nature_n not_o apt_a to_o weep_v for_o other_o thing_n another_o and_o that_o the_o change_n of_o our_o heart_n from_o sin_n to_o god_n be_v true_a repentance_n and_o a_o loathe_n of_o ourselves_o be_v true_a humiliation_n and_o that_o he_o that_o have_v rather_o leave_v his_o sin_n than_o have_v leave_v to_o keep_v it_o and_o have_v rather_o be_v the_o most_o holy_a than_o have_v leave_v to_o be_v unholy_a or_o less_o holy_a be_v neither_o without_o true_a repentance_n nor_o the_o love_n of_o god_n 5._o another_o of_o my_o doubt_n be_v because_o i_o have_v after_o my_o change_n commit_v some_o sin_n deliberate_o and_o know_o and_o be_v they_o never_o so_o small_a i_o think_v he_o that_o can_v sin_v upon_o knowledge_n and_o deliberation_n have_v no_o true_a grace_n and_o that_o if_o i_o have_v but_o have_v as_o strong_a temptation_n to_o fornication_n drunkenness_n fraud_n or_o other_o more_o heinous_a sin_n i_o may_v also_o have_v commit_v they_o and_o if_o these_o prove_v that_o i_o have_v then_o no_o save_v grace_n after_o all_o that_o i_o have_v feel_v i_o think_v it_o unlikely_a that_o ever_o i_o shall_v have_v any_o this_o stick_v with_o i_o long_o than_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n and_o the_o more_o because_o that_o every_o sin_n which_o i_o know_o commit_v do_v renew_v it_o and_o the_o term_n on_o which_o i_o receive_v consolation_n against_o it_o be_v these_o not_o as_o those_o that_o think_v every_o sin_n against_o knowledge_n do_v nullify_v all_o our_o former_a grace_n and_o unregenerate_v we_o and_o that_o every_o time_n we_o repent_v of_o such_o we_o have_v a_o new_a regeneration_n but_o 1._o all_o save_v grace_n do_v indeed_o put_v the_o soul_n into_o a_o state_n of_o enmity_n to_o sin_n as_o sin_n and_o consequent_o to_o every_o know_v sin_n 2._o this_o enmity_n must_v show_v itself_o in_o victory_n for_o bare_a strive_v when_o we_o be_v overcome_v and_o yield_v to_o sin_v when_o we_o have_v a_o while_n strive_v against_o it_o prove_v not_o the_o soul_n to_o be_v sincere_a 3._o yet_o do_v not_o god_n child_n always_o overcome_v for_o than_o they_o shall_v not_o sin_v at_o all_o but_o he_o that_o say_v he_o have_v no_o sin_n deceive_v himself_o 4._o god_n child_n always_o overcome_v those_o temptation_n which_o will_v draw_v they_o to_o a_o wicked_a unholy_a state_n of_o life_n and_o will_v unregenerate_v they_o and_o change_v their_o state_n and_o turn_v they_o back_o from_o god_n to_o a_o fleshly_a worldly_a life_n and_o also_o to_o any_o particular_a sin_n which_o prove_v such_o a_o state_n and_o signify_v a_o heart_n which_o have_v more_o habitual_a love_n to_o the_o world_n than_o unto_o god_n which_o may_v well_o be_v call_v a_o mortal_a sin_n as_o prove_v the_o sinner_n in_o a_o state_n of_o death_n as_o other_o may_v be_v call_v venial_a sin_n which_o be_v consistent_a with_o spiritual_a life_n and_o a_o justify_v state_n 5._o therefore_o whenever_o a_o justify_v person_n sin_v the_o temptation_n at_o that_o time_n prevail_v against_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o love_n of_o god_n not_o to_o the_o extinction_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n nor_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o habit_n nor_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o contrary_a habit_n in_o predominancy_n as_o set_v up_o the_o habitual_a love_n of_o any_o sin_n above_o the_o habitual_a love_n of_o god_n the_o inclination_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v still_o most_o to_o god_n and_o he_o esteem_v he_o most_o and_o prefer_v he_o in_o the_o adherence_n of_o his_o will_n in_o the_o main_a bent_n and_o course_n of_o heart_n and_o life_n only_o he_o be_v overcome_v and_o so_o far_o abate_v the_o actual_a love_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n as_o to_o commit_v this_o particular_a act_n of_o sin_n and_o remit_v or_o omit_v that_o act_n of_o love_n 6._o and_o this_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o a_o justify_v person_n to_o do_v upon_o some_o deliberation_n for_o as_o grace_n may_v strive_v one_o instant_a only_a in_o one_o act_n and_o then_o be_v sudden_o overcome_v so_o it_o may_v strive_v long_o and_o keep_v the_o mind_n on_o consideration_n of_o restrain_v motive_n and_o yet_o be_v overcome_v 7._o for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o mee●_n length_n of_o consideration_n which_o be_v enough_o to_o excite_v the_o heart_n against_o sin_n but_o there_o must_v be_v clearness_n of_o light_n and_o liveliness_n in_o those_o consideration_n and_o sometime_o a_o sudden_a conviction_n be_v so_o clear_a and_o great_a and_o sensible_a that_o in_o a_o instant_n it_o stiree_v up_o the_o soul_n to_o a_o utter_a abhorrence_n of_o the_o temptation_n when_o the_o same_o man_n at_o another_o time_n may_v have_v all_o the_o same_o thought_n in_o so_o sleepy_a a_o degree_n as_o shall_v not_o prevail_v and_o sometime_o the_o weakness_n of_o grace_n as_o much_o appear_v by_o make_v no_o resistance_n at_o all_o by_o cause_v deliberation_n even_o in_o sin_n of_o passion_n and_o surprise_n as_o at_o other_o time_n it_o do_v by_o yield_v after_o dull_a deliberation_n 8._o and_o though_o a_o little_a sin_n must_v be_v hate_v and_o universal_a obedience_n must_v prove_v our_o sincerity_n and_o no_o one_o sin_n must_v be_v wilful_o continue_v in_o yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o god_n servant_n do_v not_o oft_o commit_v sin_n material_o great_a and_o heinous_a as_o fornication_n drunkenness_n perjury_n oppression_n deceit_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o that_o they_o often_o commit_v some_o lesser_a sin_n as_o idle_a thought_n and_o idle_a word_n and_o dulness_n in_o holy_a duty_n defectiveness_n in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o omission_n of_o holy_a thought_n and_o word_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o the_o tempter_n oft_o get_v advantage_n even_o with_o they_o by_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o sin_n be_v small_a and_o such_o as_o god_n servant_n ordinary_o commit_v and_o that_o natural_o we_o fly_v with_o great_a fear_n from_o a_o great_a danger_n than_o from_o a_o less_o from_o a_o wound_n at_o the_o heart_n than_o a_o cut_a finger_n and_o therefore_o one_o reason_n why_o idle_a word_n and_o sinful_a thought_n be_v even_o deliberate_o often_o commit_v than_o most_o heinous_a sin_n be_v because_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o awake_v so_o much_o by_o fear_n and_o care_n to_o make_v resistance_n and_o love_n need_v the_o help_n of_o fear_n in_o this_o our_o weak_a condition_n 9_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o ususal_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v man_n of_o most_o knowledge_n do_v therefore_o sin_v against_o more_o knowledge_n than_o other_o do_v for_o there_o be_v but_o few_o sin_n which_o they_o know_v not_o to_o be_v sin_n they_o know_v that_o idle_a thought_n and_o word_n and_o the_o omission_n of_o the_o contrary_a be_v their_o sin_n 10._o there_o be_v some_o sin_n of_o such_o difficulty_n to_o avoid_v as_o the_o disorder_n or_o omission_n of_o holy_a thought_n and_o the_o defect_n of_o love_n to_o god_n etc._n etc._n
and_o some_o temptation_n so_o strong_a and_o the_o soul_n in_o so_o sluggish_a a_o case_n to_o resist_v that_o good_a thought_n which_o be_v in_o deliberation_n use_v against_o they_o be_v bear_v down_o at_o last_o and_o be_v less_o effectual_a 11._o and_o our_o present_a stock_n of_o habitual_a grace_n be_v never_o sufficient_a of_o itself_o without_o cooperate_a grace_n from_o christ_n and_o therefore_o when_o we_o provoke_v he_o to_o withhold_v his_o help_n no_o wonder_n if_o we_o show_v our_o weakness_n so_o far_o as_o to_o stumble_v in_o the_o way_n to_o heaven_n or_o to_o step_v out_o into_o some_o by-path_n or_o break_v over_o the_o hedge_n and_o sometime_o to_o look_v back_o and_o yet_o never_o to_o turn_v back_o and_o go_v again_o from_o god_n to_o the_o world_n 12._o and_o because_o no_o fall_n of_o a_o saint_n which_o be_v venial_a a_o infirmity_n consistent_a with_o grace_n do_v either_o destroy_v the_o habit_n of_o love_n and_o grace_n or_o set_v up_o a_o contrary_a habit_n above_o it_o nor_o yet_o pervert_v the_o scope_n and_o bent_n of_o the_o conversation_n but_o only_o prevail_v to_o a_o particular_a act_n it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o the_o soul_n rise_v up_o from_o such_o a_o sin_n by_o true_a repentance_n and_o that_o the_o new_a nature_n or_o habit_n of_o love_n within_o we_o will_v work_v out_o the_o sin_n as_o soon_o as_o it_o have_v advantage_n as_o the_o needle_n in_o the_o compass_n will_v return_v to_o its_o proper_a point_n when_o the_o force_n that_o move_v it_o do_v cease_v and_o as_o a_o run_a stream_n will_v turn_v clear_a again_o when_o the_o force_n that_o muddy_v it_o be_v past_a and_o this_o repentance_n will_v do_v much_o to_o increase_v our_o hatred_n of_o the_o sin_n and_o fortify_v 〈◊〉_d against_o the_o next_o temptation_n so_o that_o though_o there_o be_v some_o sin_n which_o through_o our_o great_a infirmity_n we_o daily_o commit_v as_o we_o daily_o repent_v of_o they_o as_o disorder_a thought_n defect_n of_o love_n neglect_v of_o god_n etc._n etc._n yet_o it_o will_v not_o be_v so_o with_o those_o sin_n which_o a_o willing_a sincere_a habituate_v penitent_a have_v more_o in_o his_o power_n to_o cast_v out_o 13._o and_o yet_o when_o all_o be_v do_v sin_n will_v breed_v fear_n and_o the_o more_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o deliberate_a and_o wilful_a it_o be_v and_o the_o best_a way_n to_o keep_v under_o doubt_n and_o terror_n and_o to_o keep_v up_o comfort_n be_v to_o keep_v up_o actual_a obedience_n and_o quick_o and_o penitent_o return_v when_o we_o have_v sin_v this_o much_o i_o think_v meet_v to_o say_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o other_o who_o may_v fall_v into_o the_o same_o temptation_n and_o perplexity_n §_o 7._o the_o mean_n by_o which_o god_n be_v please_v to_o give_v i_o some_o peace_n and_o comfort_n be_v 1._o the_o read_n of_o many_o consolatory_a book_n 2._o the_o observation_n of_o other_o man_n condition_n when_o i_o hear_v many_o make_v the_o very_a same_o complaint_n that_o i_o do_v who_o be_v people_n of_o who_o i_o have_v the_o best_a esteem_n for_o the_o uprightness_n and_o holiness_n of_o their_o life_n it_o much_o abate_v my_o fear_n and_o trouble_n and_o in_o particular_a it_o much_o comfort_v i_o to_o read_v he_o who_o i_o love_v as_o one_o of_o the_o holy_a of_o all_o the_o martyr_n mr._n john_n bradford_n subscribe_v himself_o so_o often_o the_o hard-hearted_a sinner_n and_o the_o miserable_a hard-hearted_a sinner_n even_o as_o i_o be_v use_v to_o do_v myself_o 3._o and_o it_o much_o increase_v my_o peace_n when_o god_n providence_n call_v i_o to_o the_o comfort_v of_o many_o other_o that_o have_v the_o same_o complaint_n while_o i_o answer_v their_o doubt_n i_o answer_v my_o own_o and_o the_o charity_n which_o i_o be_v constrain_v to_o exercise_v for_o they_o redound_v to_o myself_o and_o insensible_o abate_v my_o fear_n and_o procure_v i_o a_o increase_n of_o quietness_n of_o mind_n and_o yet_o after_o all_o i_o be_v glad_a of_o probability_n instead_o of_o full_a undoubted_a certainty_n and_o to_o this_o very_a day_n 1664_o though_o i_o have_v no_o such_o degree_n of_o doubtfulness_n as_o be_v any_o great_a trouble_n to_o my_o soul_n or_o procure_v any_o great_a disquiet_v fear_n yet_o can_v i_o say_v that_o i_o have_v such_o a_o certainty_n of_o my_o own_o sincerity_n in_o grace_n as_o exclude_v all_o doubt_n and_o fear_n of_o the_o contrary_n §_o 8._o at_o that_o time_n also_o god_n be_v please_v much_o to_o comfort_v and_o settle_v i_o by_o the_o acquaintance_n of_o some_o reverend_n peaceable_a divine_n mr._n garbet_n aforesaid_a and_o mr._n george_n baxter_n of_o little_a wenlock_n very_o holy_a man_n and_o peaceable_a who_o labour_v faithful_o with_o little_a success_n till_o they_o be_v above_o fourscore_o year_n of_o age_n apiece_o especial_o old_a mr._n samuel_n smith_n sometime_o of_o prittlewell_n in_o essex_n but_o then_o of_o cressage_n in_o shropshire_n who_o have_v write_v on_o the_o 6_o of_o hosea_n the_o first_o psalm_n the_o 23d_o psalm_n the_o 51st_o psalm_n the_o 90th_o psalm_n the_o eunuch_n conversion_n noah_n be_v dove_n the_o great_a assize_n and_o other_o book_n this_o good_a man_n be_v one_o of_o my_o most_o familiar_a friend_n in_o who_o converse_n i_o take_v very_o much_o delight_n who_o be_v bury_v but_o this_o winter_n 1664._o at_o his_o native_a place_n at_o dudley_n in_o worcestershire_n §_o 9_o and_o because_o the_o case_n of_o my_o body_n have_v a_o great_a operation_n upon_o my_o soul_n and_o the_o history_n of_o it_o be_v somewhat_o necessary_a to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o a_o matter_n worthy_a to_o be_v oft_o mention_v i_o shall_v here_o together_o give_v you_o a_o brief_a account_n of_o the_o most_o of_o my_o affliction_n of_o that_o kind_n reserve_v the_o mention_n of_o some_o particular_a deliverance_n to_o the_o proper_a place_n i_o be_v natural_o of_o a_o sound_a constitution_n but_o very_o thin_a and_o lean_a and_o weak_a and_o especial_o of_o a_o great_a debility_n of_o the_o nerve_n at_o seven_o year_n old_a i_o have_v the_o measil_n and_o at_o fourteen_o the_o smallpox_n i_o too_o soon_o after_o they_o go_v into_o the_o cold_a and_o after_o in_o a_o looseness_n go_v into_o a_o river_n or_o brook_n to_o wash_v i_o and_o i_o eat_v raw_a apple_n and_o pear_n and_o plumb_n in_o great_a quantity_n for_o many_o year_n all_o which_o together_o bring_v i_o into_o a_o violent_a catarrh_n and_o cough_n which_o will_v not_o let_v i_o sleep_v quiet_o in_o the_o night_n when_o this_o have_v continue_v about_o two_o year_n my_o body_n be_v very_o thin_a and_o consumption_n then_o common_a in_o the_o country_n i_o be_v much_o afraid_a of_o a_o consumption_n and_o first_o i_o do_v eat_v great_a store_n of_o raw_a garlic_n which_o take_v off_o some_o part_n of_o my_o cough_n but_o put_v a_o acrimony_n into_o my_o blood_n which_o natural_o be_v acrimonious_a after_o this_o the_o spit_n of_o blood_n increase_v my_o fear_n after_o that_o sir_n henry_n herbert_n advise_v i_o to_o take_v the_o flower_n of_o brimstone_n which_o i_o continue_v till_o i_o have_v take_v seven_o ounce_n which_o take_v off_o most_o of_o the_o remainder_n of_o my_o cough_n but_o increase_v the_o acrimony_n of_o my_o blood_n then_o a_o unskilful_a physician_n persuade_v i_o that_o i_o have_v a_o hectic_a and_o to_o cure_v that_o i_o take_v much_o milk_n from_o the_o cow_n and_o other_o pituitous_a cool_a thing_n and_o constant_o anoint_v my_o stomach_n and_o reins_o with_o refrigerate_a oil_n of_o violet_n and_o rose_n and_o be_v utter_o restrain_v from_o my_o usual_a exercise_n by_o this_o time_n i_o have_v a_o extreme_a chilliness_n without_o and_o yet_o a_o strange_a scurf_n on_o my_o tongue_n with_o a_o constant_a extreme_a desire_n of_o stretch_v that_o i_o think_v i_o can_v almost_o have_v endure_v a_o rack_n and_o a_o incredible_a flatulency_n at_o the_o stomach_n and_o a_o bleed_a at_o the_o nose_n the_o next_o physician_n a_o age_a and_o experince_v doctor_n be_v confident_a the_o scurvy_a be_v my_o chief_a distemper_n and_o thereupon_o prescribe_v i_o more_o acrimonious_a medicament_n scurvygrass_n horseradish_n mustard_n wormwood_n etc._n etc._n which_o abundant_o increase_v my_o bleed_n at_o the_o nose_n insomuch_o as_o i_o bleed_v many_o time_n half_a a_o pint_n or_o a_o pint_n a_o day_n and_o it_o continue_v long_o i_o be_v much_o weaken_v yet_o under_o this_o fear_n of_o the_o scurvy_a i_o continue_v two_o year_n take_v excessive_a quantity_n of_o acrimonious_a thing_n eat_v abundance_n of_o mustard_n at_o every_o meal_n and_o drink_v only_a wormwood-beer_n etc._n etc._n and_o use_v some_o exercise_n as_o much_o as_o time_n will_v give_v i_o leave_v by_o this_o time_n divers_a
their_o own_o infirmity_n nor_o yet_o the_o nature_n of_o pastoral_n government_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v paternal_a and_o by_o love_n nor_o do_v they_o know_v the_o way_n to_o win_v a_o soul_n nor_o to_o maintain_v the_o church_n peace_n 23._o my_o soul_n be_v much_o more_o afflict_a with_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o miserable_a world_n and_o more_o draw_v out_o in_o desire_n of_o their_o conversion_n than_o heretofore_o i_o be_v wont_a to_o look_v but_o little_a further_o than_o england_n in_o my_o prayer_n as_o not_o consider_v the_o state_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n or_o if_o i_o pray_v for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v almost_o all_o but_o now_o as_o i_o better_o understand_v the_o case_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o method_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n so_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n that_o lie_v so_o heavy_a upon_o my_o heart_n as_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o miserable_a nation_n of_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v the_o most_o astonish_a part_n of_o all_o god_n providence_n to_o i_o that_o he_o so_o far_o forsake_v almost_o all_o the_o world_n and_o confine_v his_o special_a favour_n to_o so_o few_o that_o so_o small_a a_o part_n of_o the_o world_n have_v the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n in_o comparison_n of_o heathen_n mahometan_n and_o other_o infidel_n and_o that_o among_o profess_a christian_n there_o be_v so_o few_o that_o be_v save_v from_o gross_a delusion_n and_o have_v but_o any_o competent_a knowledge_n and_o that_o among_o those_o there_o be_v so_o few_o that_o be_v serious_o religious_a and_o true_o set_v their_o heart_n on_o heaven_n i_o can_v be_v affect_v so_o much_o with_o the_o calamity_n of_o my_o own_o relation_n or_o the_o land_n of_o my_o nativity_n as_o with_o the_o case_n of_o the_o heathen_a mahometan_n and_o ignorant_a nation_n of_o the_o earth_n no_o part_n of_o my_o prayer_n be_v so_o deep_o serious_a as_o that_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o infidel_n and_o ungodly_a world_n that_o god_n name_n may_v be_v sanctify_v and_o his_o kingdom_n come_v and_o his_o will_v be_v do_v on_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n nor_o be_v i_o ever_o before_o so_o sensible_a what_o a_o plague_n the_o division_n of_o language_n be_v which_o hinder_v our_o speak_n to_o they_o for_o their_o conversion_n nor_o what_o a_o great_a sin_n tyranny_n be_v which_o keep_v out_o the_o gospel_n from_o most_o of_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n can_v we_o but_o go_v among_o tartarian_n turk_n and_o heathen_n and_o speak_v their_o language_n i_o shall_v be_v but_o little_a trouble_v for_o the_o silence_v of_o eighteen_o hundred_o minister_n at_o once_o in_o england_n nor_o for_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v cast_v out_o here_o and_o in_o scotland_n and_o ireland_n there_o be_v no_o employment_n in_o the_o world_n so_o desirable_a in_o my_o eye_n as_o to_o labour_v for_o the_o win_n of_o such_o miserable_a soul_n which_o make_v i_o great_o honour_n mr._n john_n eliot_n the_o apostle_n of_o the_o indian_n in_o new-england_n and_o whoever_o else_o have_v labour_v in_o such_o work_n 24._o yet_o be_o i_o not_o so_o much_o incline_v to_o pass_v a_o peremptory_a sentence_n of_o damnation_n upon_o all_o that_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n have_v some_o more_o reason_n than_o i_o know_v of_o before_o to_o think_v that_o god_n deal_v with_o such_o be_v much_o unknown_a to_o we_o and_o that_o the_o ungodly_a here_o among_o we_o christian_n be_v in_o a_o far_o worse_a case_n than_o they_o 25._o my_o censure_n of_o the_o papist_n do_v much_o differ_v from_o what_o they_o be_v at_o first_o i_o than_o think_v that_o their_o error_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v their_o most_o dangerous_a mistake_v as_o in_o the_o point_n of_o merit_n justification_n by_o work_n assurance_n of_o salvation_n the_o nature_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n but_o now_o i_o be_o assure_v that_o their_o mis-expression_n and_o misunderstanding_n we_o with_o our_o mistake_n of_o they_o and_o inconvenient_a express_v our_o own_o opinion_n have_v make_v the_o difference_n in_o these_o point_n to_o appear_v much_o great_a than_o they_o be_v and_o that_o in_o some_o of_o they_o it_o be_v next_o to_o none_o at_o all_o but_o the_o great_a and_o unreconcilable_a difference_n lie_v in_o their_o church_n tyranny_n and_o usurpation_n and_o in_o their_o great_a corruption_n and_o abasement_n of_o god_n worship_n together_o with_o their_o befriend_v of_o ignorance_n and_o vice_n at_o first_o i_o think_v that_o mr._n perkins_n well_o prove_v that_o a_o papist_n can_v go_v beyond_o a_o reprobate_n but_o now_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o god_n have_v many_o sanctify_a one_o among_o they_o who_o have_v receive_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n so_o practical_o that_o their_o contradictory_n error_n prevail_v not_o against_o they_o to_o hinder_v their_o love_n of_o god_n and_o their_o salvation_n but_o that_o their_o error_n be_v like_o a_o conquerable_a do_v of_o poison_n which_o nature_n do_v overcome_v and_o i_o can_v never_o believe_v that_o a_o man_n may_v not_o be_v save_v by_o that_o religion_n which_o do_v but_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o true_a love_n of_o god_n and_o to_o heavenly_a mind_n and_o life_n nor_o that_o god_n will_v ever_o cast_v a_o soul_n into_o hell_n that_o true_o love_v he_o also_o at_o first_o it_o will_v disgrace_v any_o doctrine_n with_o i_o if_o i_o do_v but_o hear_v it_o call_v popery_n and_o antichristian_a but_o i_o have_v long_o learn_v to_o be_v more_o impartial_a and_o to_o dislike_v man_n for_o bad_a doctrine_n rather_o than_o the_o doctrine_n for_o the_o man_n and_o to_o know_v that_o satan_n can_v use_v even_o the_o name_n of_o popery_n and_o antichrist_n against_o a_o truth_n 26._o i_o be_o deeply_o afflict_v for_o the_o disagreement_n of_o christian_n than_o i_o be_v when_o i_o be_v a_o young_a christian._n except_o the_o case_n of_o the_o infidel_n world_n nothing_o be_v so_o sad_a and_o grievous_a to_o my_o thought_n as_o the_o case_n of_o the_o divide_a church_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_o more_o deep_o sensible_a of_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o those_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o these_o division_n o_o how_o many_o million_o of_o soul_n be_v keep_v by_o they_o in_o ignorance_n and_o ungodliness_n and_o delude_v by_o faction_n as_o if_o it_o be_v true_a religion_n how_o be_v the_o conversion_n of_o infidel_n hinder_v by_o they_o and_o christ_n and_o religion_n heinous_o dishonour_v the_o contention_n between_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o the_o roman_a the_o papist_n and_o the_o protestant_n the_o lutheran_n and_o the_o calvinist_n have_v woeful_o hinder_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ._n 27._o i_o have_v spend_v much_o of_o my_o study_n about_o term_n of_o christian_a concord_n and_o have_v over_o and_o over_o consider_v of_o the_o several_a way_n which_o several_a sort_n of_o reconciler_n have_v devise_v i_o have_v think_v of_o the_o papist_n way_n who_o think_v there_o will_v be_v no_o union_n but_o by_o come_v over_o whole_o to_o their_o church_n and_o i_o have_v find_v that_o it_o be_v neither_o possible_a nor_o desirable_a i_o have_v think_v and_o think_v again_o of_o the_o way_n of_o the_o moderate_a papist_n cassander_n grotius_n balwin_n etc._n etc._n and_o of_o those_o that_o will_v have_v all_o reduce_v to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o first_o before_o the_o division_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v have_v his_o primacy_n and_o govern_v all_o the_o church_n by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n with_o a_o salvo_n to_o the_o right_n of_o king_n and_o patriarch_n and_o prelate_n and_o that_o the_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n which_o then_o be_v receive_v may_v prevail_v and_o for_o my_o own_o part_n if_o i_o live_v in_o such_o a_o state_n of_o the_o church_n i_o will_v live_v peaceable_o as_o glad_a of_o unity_n though_o lament_v the_o corruption_n and_o tyranny_n but_o i_o be_o full_o assure_v that_o none_o of_o these_o be_v the_o true_a desirable_a term_n of_o unity_n nor_o such_o as_o be_v ever_o like_a to_o procure_v a_o universal_a concord_n and_o i_o be_o as_o sure_a that_o the_o true_a mean_n and_o term_n of_o concord_n be_v obvious_a and_o easy_a to_o a_o impartial_a willing_a mind_n and_o that_o these_o three_o thing_n alone_o will_v easy_o heal_v and_o unite_v all_o the_o church_n 1._o that_o all_o christian_a prince_n and_o governor_n take_v all_o the_o coercive_a power_n about_o religion_n into_o their_o own_o hand_n though_o if_o prelate_n and_o their_o court_n must_v be_v use_v as_o their_o officer_n in_o exercise_v that_o coercive_a power_n so_o be_v it_o and_o that_o they_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o approve_a
sense_n we_o have_v of_o the_o extraordinary_a want_n of_o faithful_a and_o able_a minister_n to_o carry_v on_o the_o lord_n work_v in_o this_o dark_a land_n together_o with_o the_o daily_a cry_n from_o many_o place_n of_o people_n that_o be_v perish_v for_o want_n of_o bread_n press_v we_o to_o renew_v our_o former_a request_n to_o you_o for_o help_n in_o this_o day_n of_o our_o necessity_n and_o we_o be_v somewhat_o the_o more_o embolden_a thereto_o by_o the_o apprehension_n we_o find_v you_o to_o have_v of_o our_o condition_n however_o for_o the_o present_a you_o find_v not_o how_o to_o help_v we_o ●our_n great_a plenty_n together_o with_o your_o association_n and_o nearness_n of_o habitation_n make_v your_o pastor_n and_o people_n as_o one_o beside_o the_o university_n be_v with_o you_o which_o bless_v be_v god_n be_v well_o replenish_v with_o many_o gracious_a plant_n to_o who_o your_o unamity_n will_v doubtless_o be_v a_o very_a great_a encouragement_n to_o settle_v among_o you_o whereas_o our_o distance_n from_o they_o together_o with_o those_o sad_a report_n which_o be_v cast_v upon_o this_o land_n render_v we_o hopeless_a of_o any_o considerable_a supply_v that_o way_n these_o thing_n we_o humble_o offer_v as_o motive_n to_o you_o for_o spare_v some_o that_o may_v be_v helpful_a to_o we_o in_o this_o day_n of_o our_o extreme_a necessity_n and_o now_o dear_a brethren_n most_o thankful_o accept_v your_o love_n we_o recommend_v your_o person_n labour_n and_o flock_n to_o the_o care_n and_o oversight_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a shepherd_n and_o bishop_n of_o our_o soul_n who_o grace_n be_v with_o you_o amen_n your_o brethren_n unfeigned_o love_v you_o in_o the_o lord_n sam._n winter_n tho._n hook_n ol._n huchinson_n william_n markham_n john_n price_n elder_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o dublin_n whereof_o dr._n samuel_n winter_n be_v pastor_n dublin_n jan._n 16_o 1655._o in_o the_o name_n and_o by_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o associate_v church_n in_o ireland_n §_o 37._o about_o this_o time_n mr._n vine_n extol_v the_o judgement_n and_o learning_n of_o dr._n ralph_n brownrigg_n bishop_n of_o exeter_n and_o advise_v i_o to_o choose_v he_o as_o the_o fit_a man_n to_o treat_v with_o for_o concord_n with_o the_o diocesane_a party_n i_o write_v to_o he_o to_o that_o end_n and_o send_v with_o all_o some_o term_n of_o concord_n he_o return_v i_o a_o very_a kind_a letter_n profess_v his_o willingness_n to_o prosecute_v that_o work_n and_o withal_o a_o answer_n to_o my_o proposal_n which_o grant_v the_o main_a matter_n which_o i_o desire_v and_o will_v have_v unite_v we_o all_o if_o such_o term_n have_v be_v grant_v when_o the_o king_n come_v in_o and_o settle_v the_o church_n government_n for_o he_o grant_v with_o bishop_n usher_n that_o every_o presbyter_n be_v and_o must_v be_v a_o governor_n as_o well_o as_o a_o teacher_n of_o his_o own_o flock_n and_o that_o subordinate_a assembly_n like_o rural_a denaries_n may_v be_v set_v up_o in_o every_o market_n town_n or_o in_o certain_a division_n for_o the_o performance_n hereof_o but_o because_o i_o find_v he_o too_o tenacious_a of_o the_o titular_a honour_n of_o the_o bishop_n which_o though_o i_o can_v have_v consent_v to_o myself_o yet_o those_o time_n will_v not_o permit_v i_o write_v to_o he_o no_o more_o and_o see_v we_o be_v not_o like_o that_o way_n to_o attain_v our_o end_n which_o be_v a_o present_a union_n with_o that_o party_n but_o have_v i_o foresee_v what_o since_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v i_o will_v have_v prosecute_v it_o far_o that_o i_o may_v have_v have_v more_o of_o his_o confession_n to_o testify_v against_o unpeaceable_a men._n the_o letter_n i_o write_v to_o he_o be_v as_o follow_v most_o reverend_a and_o much_o honour_a sir_n that_o i_o be_o utter_a stranger_n to_o you_o shall_v make_v this_o address_n i_o suppose_v will_v be_v no_o strange_a matter_n to_o you_o than_o that_o the_o weak_a shall_v seek_v for_o help_v unto_o the_o strong_a and_o that_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o grace_n shall_v tie_v we_o to_o a_o mutual_a communication_n according_a to_o our_o power_n so_o much_o of_o my_o own_o time_n be_v spend_v in_o such_o paper_n converse_v with_o man_n who_o face_n i_o never_o see_v have_v somewhat_o harden_v i_o to_o this_o attempt_n and_o i_o know_v that_o as_o far_o as_o you_o excel_v i_o in_o true_a wisdom_n and_o humility_n so_o far_o will_v you_o excel_v in_o condescension_n to_o inferior_n and_o in_o readiness_n to_o do_v good_a and_o therefore_o i_o have_v no_o doubt_n of_o your_o favourable_a acceptance_n of_o this_o address_n if_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o matter_n or_o manner_n to_o hinder_v i_o shall_v take_v leave_n first_o to_o tell_v you_o my_o general_n errand_n with_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o and_o then_o my_o particular_a one_o nature_n incline_v we_o to_o desire_v to_o know_v and_o grace_n to_o desire_v the_o right_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o will_n from_o himself_o only_o who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o light_n must_v we_o have_v this_o light_n and_o from_o he_o by_o his_o appoint_a mean_n and_o revelation_n if_o i_o learn_v not_o of_o those_o that_o god_n have_v teach_v but_o expect_v all_o immediate_o from_o himself_o i_o may_v live_v in_o darkness_n where_o i_o hear_v of_o the_o great_a revelation_n from_o heaven_n thither_o do_v i_o take_v it_o for_o my_o duty_n to_o address_v myself_o and_o if_o there_o be_v inspire_v prophet_n now_o as_o heretofore_o i_o will_v go_v to_o they_o but_o see_v god_n now_o take_v another_o way_n i_o think_v i_o ought_v to_o follow_v he_o and_o to_o be_v a_o learner_n if_o possible_a of_o those_o who_o he_o have_v any_o way_n most_o eminate_o illuminate_v and_o though_o my_o action_n may_v be_v more_o rule_v by_o many_o than_o by_o one_o where_o they_o have_v more_o authority_n yet_o my_o judgement_n may_v be_v better_o inform_v by_o one_o that_o excel_v in_o light_n than_o by_o many_o other_o while_o i_o have_v make_v enquiry_n after_o these_o divine_a communication_n the_o concurrent●_n vote_n of_o my_o most_o learned_a sober_a judicious_a friend_n have_v direct_v i_o first_o to_o you_o as_o the_o man_n who_o for_o clearness_n and_o soundness_n of_o judgement_n be_v the_o oracle_n of_o this_o our_o theological_a world_n though_o i_o may_v learn_v of_o many_o hundred_o yet_o do_v i_o know_v where_o so_o well_o to_o profit_n and_o be_v so_o strong_a a_o judgement_n as_o common_a as_o many_o other_o excellent_a qualification_n in_o learned_a man_n i_o shall_v have_v take_v up_o near_a home_n and_o not_o presume_v to_o have_v invite_v you_o to_o any_o trouble_n my_o first_o question_n therefore_o be_v in_o general_a whether_o you_o mind_v and_o leisure_n will_v vouchsafe_v i_o the_o liberty_n now_o and_o then_o to_o intrude_v for_o the_o resolution_n of_o some_o difficulty_n not_o frequent_o nor_o contentious_o but_o seldom_o and_o as_o a_o meet_a learner_n if_o you_o be_v unwilling_a or_o not_o vacant_a say_v so_o and_o rid_v yourself_o of_o this_o trouble_n in_o a_o word_n and_o though_o the_o great_a matter_n that_o i_o will_v inquire_v about_o be_v point_n of_o faith_n wherein_n if_o you_o have_v take_v notice_n that_o i_o have_v wrong_v the_o church_n by_o any_o of_o my_o crude_a and_o hasty_a write_n your_o check_n will_v tend_v to_o a_o reformation_n and_o be_v welcome_a yet_o the_o particular_a that_o at_o present_a i_o shall_v try_v your_o willingness_n in_o be_v in_o point_n of_o discipline_n i_o have_v long_o be_v very_o sensible_a of_o the_o sad_a division_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n hereabout_o and_o especial_o in_o england_n and_o long_v to_o see_v the_o day_n that_o some_o wise_a compassionate_a hand_n will_v right_o attempt_v the_o cure_n as_o ignorent_fw-la man_n know_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o difficulty_n of_o thing_n so_o i_o have_v think_v that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o great_a hindrance_n in_o man_n affection_n than_o in_o their_o principle_n it_o will_v be_v a_o easy_a matter_n speedy_o to_o reconcile_v the_o moderate_a episcopal_n and_o presbyterian_a divine_n my_o earnest_a request_n to_o you_o be_v that_o you_o will_v be_v please_v free_o to_o tell_v i_o your_o thought_n how_o far_o this_o accommodation_n follow_v may_v tend_v to_o a_o closure_n 1._o in_o every_o parish_n where_o there_o be_v more_o presbyter_n than_o one_o let_v one_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o his_o consent_n chief_o take_v in_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o let_v many_o such_o church_n be_v associate_v call_v it_o a_o classis_fw-la or_o what_o you_o will_v and_o let_v the_o fit_a man_n be_v your_o precedent_n as_o long_o as_o he_o be_v fit_a that_o be_v during_o life_n unless_o he_o deserve_v a_o
own_v the_o king_n declaration_n by_o return_v he_o thanks_o for_o it_o and_o i_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v design_v that_o we_o must_v be_v the_o desirer_n or_o procurer_n of_o it_o but_o i_o tell_v he_o my_o resolution_n to_o meddle_v no_o more_o in_o such_o matter_n have_v incur_v already_o so_o much_o hatred_n and_o displeasure_n by_o endeavour_v unity_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o minister_n also_o have_v enough_o of_o it_o and_o resolve_v that_o they_o will_v not_o meddle_v so_o that_o mr._n nye_n and_o his_o brethren_n think_v it_o partly_o long_o of_o we_o that_o they_o miss_v of_o their_o intend_a liberty_n but_o all_o be_v averse_a to_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o the_o indulgence_n or_o toleration_n of_o the_o papist_n think_v it_o at_o least_o unfit_a for_o they_o §_o 419._o the_o independent_a brethren_n also_o tell_v i_o that_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n have_v tell_v they_o that_o their_o liberty_n be_v motion_v before_o when_o the_o king_n declaration_n come_v out_o and_o that_o we_o speak_v against_o it_o even_o i_o by_o name_n but_o when_o i_o tell_v they_o what_o word_n i_o speak_v before_o recite_v they_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v but_o now_o they_o grow_v great_o affect_v to_o the_o e._n of_o b._n a_o papist_n think_v that_o the_o king_n declaration_n be_v procure_v by_o he_o and_o that_o he_o and_o the_o papist_n must_v be_v the_o mean_n for_o their_o own_o end_n to_o procure_v our_o liberty_n but_o the_o declaration_n take_v not_o at_o all_o with_o the_o parliament_n or_o people_n and_o the_o e._n of_o b._n set_v himself_o against_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n accuse_v he_o by_o article_n of_o high_a treason_n in_o the_o lord_n house_n be_v cast_v off_o by_o the_o king_n as_o a_o incendiary_n and_o force_v to_o hide_v his_o head_n §_o 420._o good_a old_a mr._n simeon_n ash_n be_v bury_v the_o very_a even_o of_o bartholomew-day_n and_o go_v seasonable_o to_o heaven_n at_o the_o very_a time_n when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n he_o be_v one_o of_o our_o old_a nonconformist_n of_o the_o old_a strain_n for_o now_o conform_v be_v quite_o another_o thing_n than_o before_o the_o war_n he_o be_v a_o christian_a of_o the_o primitive_a simplicity_n not_o make_v for_o controversy_n nor_o incline_v to_o dispute_n but_o of_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o a_o cheerful_a mind_n and_o of_o a_o fluent_a elegancy_n in_o prayer_n full_a of_o matter_n and_o excellent_a word_n his_o ordinary_a speech_n be_v holy_a and_o edify_a be_v confine_v much_o to_o his_o house_n by_o the_o gout_n and_o have_v a_o good_a estate_n and_o a_o very_a good_a wife_n incline_v to_o entertainment_n and_o liberality_n his_o house_n be_v very_o much_o frequent_v by_o minister_n he_o be_v always_o cheerful_a without_o profuse_a laughter_n or_o liberty_n or_o vain_a word_n never_o trouble_v with_o doubt_n of_o his_o interest_n in_o christ_n but_o taste_v the_o continual_a love_n of_o god_n be_v much_o dispose_v to_o the_o communicate_v of_o it_o to_o other_o and_o comfort_v deject_v soul_n his_o eminent_a sincerity_n make_v he_o exceed_o love_v and_o honour_v insomuch_o as_o mr._n gataker_n mr._n whittaker_n and_o other_o the_o most_o excellent_a divine_n of_o london_n when_o they_o go_v to_o god_n desire_v he_o to_o preach_v their_o funeral_n sermon_n he_o be_v zealous_a in_o bring_v in_o the_o king_n have_v be_v chaplain_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o manchester_n in_o the_o war_n he_o fall_v under_o the_o obloquy_n of_o the_o cromwellian_o for_o cross_v their_o design_n he_o write_v to_o col._n sanders_n col._n barton_n and_o other_o in_o the_o army_n when_o g._n monk_n come_v in_o to_o engage_v they_o for_o the_o king_n have_v preach_v his_o lecture_n in_o cornhill_n be_v heat_v he_o take_v cold_a in_o the_o vestry_n and_o think_v it_o will_v have_v prove_v but_o one_o of_o his_o old_a fit_n of_o the_o gout_n he_o go_v to_o highgate_n but_o it_o turn_v to_o a_o fever_n he_o die_v as_o he_o live_v in_o great_a consolation_n and_o cheerful_a exercise_n of_o faith_n molest_v with_o no_o fear_n or_o doubt_n discernible_a exceed_v glad_a of_o the_o company_n of_o his_o friend_n and_o great_o encourage_v all_o about_o he_o with_o his_o joyful_a expression_n in_o respect_n of_o death_n and_o his_o approach_a change_n so_o that_o no_o man_n can_v seem_v to_o be_v more_o fearless_a of_o it_o when_o he_o have_v at_o last_o lie_v speechless_a for_o some_o time_n as_o soon_o as_o i_o come_v to_o he_o gladness_n so_o excite_v his_o spirit_n that_o he_o speak_v joyful_o and_o free_o of_o his_o go_v to_o god_n to_o those_o about_o he_o i_o stay_v with_o he_o his_o last_o evening_n till_o we_o have_v long_o expect_v his_o change_n be_v speechless_a all_o that_o day_n and_o in_o the_o night_n he_o depart_v §_o 421._o on_o the_o first_o of_o january_n follow_v be_v bury_v good_a mr._n james_n nalton_n another_o minister_n of_o the_o primitive_a sincerity_n a_o good_a linguist_n a_o zealous_a excellent_a preacher_n common_o call_v the_o weep_a prophet_n because_o his_o seriousness_n oft_o express_v itself_o by_o tear_n of_o a_o most_o holy_a blameless_a life_n though_o learned_a yet_o great_o averse_a to_o controversy_n and_o dispute_n in_o almost_o all_o thing_n like_o mr._n ash_n except_o his_o natural_a temper_n and_o the_o influence_n it_o have_v upon_o his_o soul_n both_o of_o they_o so_o compose_v of_o humility_n piety_n and_o innocence_n that_o no_o enemy_n of_o godliness_n that_o know_v they_o have_v a_o word_n of_o sense_n to_o say_v against_o they_o they_o be_v scorn_v as_o puritan_n as_o their_o brethren_n but_o escape_v all_o the_o particular_a exception_n and_o obloquy_n which_o many_o other_o undergo_v but_o as_o one_o be_v cheerful_a so_o the_o other_o be_v from_o his_o youth_n surprise_v with_o violent_a fit_n of_o melancholy_n once_o in_o a_o few_o year_n which_o though_o it_o distract_v he_o not_o yet_o keep_v he_o till_o it_o be_v over_o in_o a_o most_o despondent_a case_n and_o next_o unto_o despair_n and_o in_o his_o health_n he_o be_v over_o humble_a and_o have_v ●o_o mean_a thought_n of_o himself_o and_o all_o that_o be_v his_o own_o and_o never_o put_v out_o himself_o among_o his_o brethren_n into_o any_o employment_n which_o have_v the_o least_o show_n of_o ostentation_n less_o than_o a_o year_n before_o he_o die_v he_o fall_v into_o a_o grievous_a fit_n of_o melancholy_a in_o which_o he_o be_v so_o confident_a of_o his_o gracelesness_n that_o he_o usual_o cry_v out_o o_fw-la not_o one_o spark_n of_o grace_n not_o one_o good_a desire_n or_o thought_n i_o can_v no_o more_o pray_v than_o a_o post_n if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n will_v tell_v i_o that_o i_o have_v true_a grace_n i_o will_v not_o believe_v he_o and_o yet_o at_o that_o time_n do_v he_o pray_v very_o well_o and_o i_o can_v demonstrate_v his_o sincerity_n so_o much_o to_o he_o in_o his_o desire_n and_o life_n that_o he_o have_v not_o a_o word_n to_o say_v against_o it_o but_o yet_o be_v harp_v still_o on_o the_o same_o string_n and_o will_v hardly_o be_v persuade_v that_o he_o be_v melancholy_a it_o please_v god_n to_o recover_v he_o from_o this_o fit_a and_o short_o after_o he_o tell_v i_o that_o now_o he_o confess_v that_o what_o i_o say_v be_v true_a and_o his_o despair_n be_v all_o but_o the_o effect_n of_o melancholy_a and_o rejoice_v much_o in_o god_n deliverance_n but_o short_o after_o come_v out_o the_o bartholomew_n act_n which_o cast_v he_o out_o of_o his_o place_n and_o ministry_n and_o his_o heart_n be_v trouble_v with_o the_o sad_a case_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o multitude_n of_o minister_n cast_v out_o and_o silence_v and_o at_o his_o own_o unserviceableness_n it_o revive_v his_o melancholy_n which_o begin_v to_o work_v also_o with_o some_o fear_n of_o want_n and_o his_o family_n distress_n and_o this_o cast_v he_o so_o low_a that_o the_o violence_n of_o it_o wear_v he_o away_o like_o a_o true_a marasmus_n so_o that_o without_o any_o other_o disease_n but_o mere_a melancholy_n he_o consume_v to_o death_n continue_v still_o his_o sad_a despondency_n and_o self-condemning_a mean_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v how_o little_a judgement_n be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o a_o man_n condition_n by_o his_o melancholy_a apprehension_n or_o the_o sadness_n of_o his_o mind_n at_o death_n and_o in_o what_o a_o different_a manner_n man_n of_o the_o same_o eminency_n in_o holiness_n and_o sincerity_n may_v go_v to_o god_n which_o i_o have_v the_o rather_o show_v by_o the_o instance_n of_o those_o two_o saint_n than_o who_o this_o age_n have_v scarce_o produce_v and_o set_v up_o a_o pair_n more_o pious_a humble_a just_a sincere_a laborious_a in_o their_o well-performed_n work_n unblameable_a in_o their_o life_n not_o
their_o lawful_a pastor_n to_o prevent_v all_o ill_a effect_n 6._o and_o for_o the_o minister_n himself_o to_o repeat_v his_o sermon_n or_o catechise_v or_o instruct_v his_o people_n that_o will_v come_v to_o he_o and_o be_v this_o the_o intolerable_a evil_n worthy_a to_o be_v avoid_v at_o the_o rate_n of_o all_o our_o calamity_n be_v all_o our_o division_n better_a than_o the_o endure_a of_o this_o if_o any_o limitation_n necessary_a have_v be_v omit_v i_o may_v have_v expect_v to_o have_v find_v they_o name_v which_o i_o do_v not_o but_o 1._o no_o man_n denial_n can_v make_v we_o ignorant_a of_o it_o that_o too_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o people_n in_o most_o place_n know_v not_o what_o baptism_n christianity_n or_o the_o catechism_n be_v and_o many_o hundred_o thousand_o can_v read_v 2._o and_o that_o few_o minister_n so_o personal_o instruct_v they_o as_o their_o need_n require_v nor_o can_v do_v for_o so_o many_o or_o by_o their_o instruction_n they_o have_v not_o cure_v they_o 3._o that_o to_o go_v to_o their_o neighbour_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n to_o hear_v again_o the_o sermon_n which_o they_o have_v forget_v and_o to_o praise_n god_n and_o hear_v the_o scripture_n or_o a_o good_a book_n that_o be_v license_v read_v have_v do_v great_a good_a to_o many_o soul_n 4._o that_o otherwise_o such_o ignorant_a person_n as_o we_o speak_v of_o except_o at_o church-time_n can_v spend_v the_o lord_n day_n to_o any_o edification_n of_o themselves_o or_o family_n 5._o man_n be_v not_o hinder_v from_o feast_v drink_v play_v together_o frequent_o and_o in_o great_a number_n why_o then_o by_o bishop_n from_o read_v the_o scripture_n or_o a_o license_v book_n or_o sermon_n 6._o that_o god_n have_v command_v provoke_v one_o another_o to_o love_n and_o to_o good_a work_n and_o exhort_v one_o another_o daily_a while_o it_o be_v call_v to_o day_n lest_o any_o be_v harden_v through_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n heb._n 10._o 24._o and_o 3._o 13._o and_o cornelius_n have_v his_o friend_n with_o he_o in_o his_o house_n for_o god_n servic_n act_n 10._o and_o act_n 12._o 12._o in_o mary_n house_n many_o be_v gather_v together_o pray_v and_o we_o find_v not_o that_o even_o the_o jew_n be_v ever_o forbid_v it_o by_o the_o pharisee_n themselves_o and_o he_o that_o see_v his_o brother_n have_v bodily_a need_v and_o shut_v up_o the_o bowel_n of_o his_o compassion_n from_o he_o how_o dwell_v the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o he_o and_o the_o need_n of_o soul_n be_v more_o common_a and_o to_o be_v compassionated_a rule_n may_v regulate_v charity_n in_o both_o case_n but_o may_v forbid_v it_o or_o the_o necessary_a exercise_n of_o it_o in_o neither_o he_o shall_v perish_v as_o guilty_a of_o murder_n that_o let_v the_o poor_a die_n for_o want_n of_o his_o relief_n though_o he_o be_v forbid_v to_o relieve_v they_o unless_o when_o the_o hurt_n will_v be_v great_a than_o the_o good_a love_n and_o mercy_n be_v too_o great_a duty_n for_o a_o bishop_n to_o null_n or_o dispense_v with_o we_o put_v no_o private_a man_n on_o ministerial_a action_n but_o in_o his_o own_o place_n to_o show_v mercy_n to_o soul_n to_o say_v that_o on_o this_o pretence_n schismatical_a meeting_n will_v be_v hold_v be_v no_o more_o to_o the_o people_n than_o to_o say_v that_o all_o error_n and_o wickedness_n may_v be_v keep_v up_o by_o pretence_n of_o reason_n truth_n piety_n scripture_n honesty_n etc._n etc._n but_o we_o must_v not_o therefore_o say_v away_o with_o reason_n truth_n etc._n etc._n but_o i_o hope_v god_n servant_n will_v die_v rather_o than_o desert_n their_o master_n work_n 4._o prop._n 1._o the_o great_a part_n of_o it_o once_o a_o quarter_n of_o read_v the_o liturgy_n by_o lecture_n strict_a ay_o why_o not_o all_o as_o well_o as_o the_o great_a part_n why_o not_o always_o as_o well_o as_o once_o a_o quarter_n answ._n 1._o i_o know_v that_o here_o and_o there_o a_o word_n may_v be_v scruple_v as_o the_o read_n of_o bell_n and_o the_o dragon_n or_o such_o like_a which_o silent_o pass_v by_o make_v no_o disturbance_n and_o i_o think_v the_o scruple_v of_o such_o a_o word_n deserve_v not_o that_o all_o the_o people_n soul_n be_v punish_v for_o it_o with_o the_o loss_n of_o all_o their_o teacher_n labour_n 2._o i_o never_o hear_v one_o conformist_n that_o say_v it_o all_o and_o why_o may_v not_o one_o be_v forbear_v as_o well_o as_o another_o 3._o all_o the_o liturgy_n for_o the_o day_n will_v be_v work_n too_o long_o and_o great_a that_o weak_a man_n that_o have_v no_o curate_n can_v read_v all_o and_o preach_v or_o catechise_v also_o if_o you_o say_v that_o preach_a and_o catechise_v then_o may_v be_v omit_v i_o answer_v they_o be_v god_n ordinance_n and_o needful_a to_o man_n soul_n and_o see_v prayer_n and_o preach_a be_v both_o duty_n proportion_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o neither_o may_v be_v shut_v out_o if_o you_o account_v the_o liturgy_n better_o than_o preach_v yet_o every_o parcel_n of_o it_o entire_o be_v not_o sure_a of_o so_o great_a worth_n as_o to_o cast_v out_o preach_v for_o it_o rich_a parson_n that_o have_v curate_n may_v between_o they_o do_v both_o but_o so_o can_v poor_a country_n minister_n that_o be_v alone_o and_o be_v sickly_a and_o as_o to_o the_o always_o 1._o the_o canon_n limit_v some_o but_o to_o once_o in_o half_a a_o year_n which_o be_v less_o 2._o the_o conformable_a city-preacher_n that_o have_v curate_n very_o rare_o read_v it_o 3._o else_o what_o shall_v man_n do_v with_o curate_n if_o they_o must_v always_o read_v themselves_o 4._o a_o weak_a man_n may_v do_v both_o once_o a_o quarter_n that_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v it_o every_o day_n 4._o prop._n 2._o it_o be_v suppose_v it_o will_v be_v do_v strict_a k_n yes_o once_o a_o quarter_n for_o you_o will_v have_v no_o man_n oblige_v to_o do_v it_o often_o nor_o all_o of_o it_o then_o neither_o answ._n read_v and_o believe_v as_o you_o can_v the_o word_n be_v if_o in_o the_o congregation_n where_o he_o be_v incumbent_n the_o great_a part_n of_o it_o appoint_v for_o that_o time_n be_v sometime_o as_o once_o a_o quarter_n use_v by_o himself_o and_o every_o lord's-day_n ordinary_o unless_o sickness_n etc._n etc._n either_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o his_o curate_n or_o assistant_n be_v every_o lord's-day_n but_o once_o a_o quarter_n or_o can_v it_o be_v every_o day_n do_v and_o no_o one_o oblige_v to_o do_v it_o 4._o prop._n 3._o let_v not_o christian_a parent_n be_v forbid_v to_o dedicate_v their_o child_n public_o etc._n etc._n strict_a l_o christian_n parent_n be_v not_o forbid_v to_o present_v their_o child_n to_o be_v baptise_a but_o the_o church_n in_o favour_n to_o the_o infant_n appoint_v other_o in_o case_n the_o parent_n shall_v die_v or_o neglect_v their_o duty_n to_o have_v a_o paternal_a care_n of_o they_o in_o order_n to_o their_o education_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o their_o baptismal_a covenant_n that_o which_o follow_v be_v not_o worth_a the_o animadvert_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o uncharitable_a and_o scandalous_a insinuation_n ans._n 1._o read_v and_o believe_v what_o be_v forbid_v then_o shall_v the_o priest_n speak_v to_o the_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n on_o this_o wise_a dear_o belove_v this_o infant_n must_v also_o faithful_o promise_v by_o you_o that_o be_v his_o surety_n that_o he_o will_v renounce_v the_o devil_n etc._n etc._n i_o demand_v therefore_o do_v thou_o in_o the_o name_n of_o this_o child_n renounce_v etc._n etc._n the_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n must_v say_v i_o renounce_v they_o all_o do_v thou_o believe_v etc._n etc._n answ._n all_o this_o i_o steadfast_o believe_v quest._n will_v thou_o be_v baptise_a in_o this_o faith_n answ._n that_o be_v my_o desire_n q._n will_v thou_o obedient_o keep_v etc._n etc._n answ._n ay_o will_n they_o be_v after_o to_o name_n the_o child_n after_o the_o priest_n shall_v say_v to_o the_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n for_o asmuch_o as_o this_o child_n have_v promise_v by_o you_o that_o be_v his_o surety_n to_o renounce_v to_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o to_o serve_v he_o it_o be_v your_o part_n and_o duty_n to_o see_v that_o this_o infant_n be_v teach_v so_o soon_o as_o he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o learn_v what_o a_o solemn_a vow_n promise_v and_o profession_n he_o have_v here_o make_v by_o you_o etc._n etc._n see_v the_o rest_n so_o that_o here_o all_z the_o covenant_a action_n on_o the_o infant_n be_v part_n be_v make_v the_o proper_a work_n of_o his_o surety_n call_v godfather_n and_o godmother_n without_o one_o word_n of_o the_o parent_n do_v it_o or_o any_o part_n of_o it_o and_o then_o come_v the_o canon_n and_o far_o say_v can._n 29._o no_o parent_n shall_v be_v urge_v to_o be_v present_a nor_o be_v
operate_v a_o qualitative_a change_n on_o the_o receiver_n mind_n or_o heart_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o sacrament_n nor_o yet_o that_o it_o be_v institute_v to_o do_v so_o by_o 〈◊〉_d or_o physical_a operation_n per_fw-la modum_fw-la naturae_fw-la without_o intellectual_a consideration_n and_o moral_a operation_n the_o first_o will_v be_v grant_v that_o the_o effect_n of_o such_o quality_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o it_o and_o as_o to_o the_o 2d_o observe_v that_o we_o grant_v as_o follow_v 1._o that_o sacrament_n by_o investiture_n or_o delivery_n of_o right_n as_o instrument_n convey_v all_o that_o relative_n grace_n which_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n do_v give_v immediate_o to_o consenter_n 2._o that_o it_o moral_o work_v also_o holy_a qualification_n by_o man_n considering-improvement_n 3._o and_o that_o with_o the_o use_n of_o it_o though_o not_o by_o the_o instrumentality_n of_o it_o god_n may_v physical_o or_o miraculous_o without_o any_o second_o cause_n give_v qualitative_a grace_n to_o infant_n or_o who_o he_o please_v in_o a_o way_n to_o we_o unknown_a but_o that_o this_o last_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o a_o sacrament_n i_o be_o now_o to_o prove_v 1._o all_o that_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o sacrament_n be_v find_v in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o use_v by_o the_o adult_n yea_o they_o be_v the_o more_o notable_a and_o excellent_a subject_n to_o who_o it_o be_v first_o administer_v and_o the_o case_n of_o infant_n be_v more_o obscure_a and_o non_fw-la notum_fw-la per_fw-la ignotius_fw-la sed_fw-la ignotius_fw-la per_fw-la notius_fw-la probandum_fw-la est_fw-la but_o the_o sacrament_n as_o administer_v to_o or_o use_v by_o the_o adult_n do_v necessary_o contain_v no_o more_o than_o 1._o mutual_a covenant_v 2._o the_o instrumental_a conveyance_n or_o confirmation_n of_o the_o relative_n grace_n of_o the_o covenant_n or_o ius_n 3._o moral_a aptitude_n to_o work_v holy_a quality_n 4._o and_o that_o it_o be_v symbolum_n ordinis_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la christianismi_fw-la 1._o this_o be_v prove_v as_o to_o the_o baptism_n of_o the_o adult_n 1._o they_o make_v their_o solemn_a signal_n profession_n of_o federation_n consent_n reception_n etc._n etc._n 2._o god_n by_o his_o minister_n do_v invest_v the_o receiver_n in_o his_o right_n of_o special_a relation_n to_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o his_o right_n to_o pardon_n reconciliation_n justification_n and_o adoption_n and_o right_o to_o glory_n 3._o it_o be_v a_o mean_v adapt_v to_o work_v moral_o on_o the_o will_n by_o the_o just_a consideration_n of_o the_o understanding_n 4._o it_o be_v the_o symbol_n of_o christianity_n call_v our_o christen_n 2._o the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o therefore_o crave_v leave_v not_o to_o repeal_v they_o 1._o that_o sacrament_n be_v act_n of_o solemn_a mutual_a covenant_v none_o deny_v that_o know_v what_o christianity_n be_v the_o uninterrupted_a form_n of_o baptise_v in_o all_o age_n prove_v it_o 2._o that_o god_n by_o their_o instrumentality_n deliver_v the_o adult_n their_o ius_n or_o relative_n grace_n or_o right_o to_o present_a pardon_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o deny_v 3._o that_o they_o be_v moral_a instrument_n of_o holy_a act_n and_o so_o of_o habit_n in_o the_o adult_n neither_o papist_n arminian_o lutheran_n or_o calvinist_n deny_v and_o above_o all_o the_o arminian_o shall_v not_o deny_v it_o who_o i_o think_v acknowledge_v no_o mean_n but_o moral_a if_o any_o other_o operation_n on_o man_n soul._n 4._o and_o that_o they_o be_v tesserae_fw-la vel_fw-la symbola_fw-la christianae_n religionis_fw-la none_o that_o i_o know_v of_o do_v deny_v but_o that_o they_o be_v institute_v to_o operate_v on_o the_o adult_n any_o any_o otherwise_o than_o moral_o and_o this_o essential_a to_o they_o i_o deny_v upon_o three_o reason_n 1._o there_o be_v no_o scripture_n that_o assert_v it_o et_fw-la quod_fw-la scriptum_n non_fw-la est_fw-la credendum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la about_o such_o matter_n 2._o else_o not_o only_o the_o armenian_n but_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n shall_v deny_v the_o sacrament_n who_o deny_v such_o use_n and_o operation_n of_o they_o and_o special_o all_o those_o protestant_n who_o deal_v with_o the_o papist_n opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la large_o write_v to_o prove_v that_o sacrament_n work_v but_o moral_o 3._o and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n show_v it_o impossible_a without_o a_o miracle_n for_o the_o grace_n to_o be_v convey_v be_v the_o act_n or_o habit_n or_o disposition_n of_o love_n to_o god_n and_o the_o conjunct_a grace_n with_o that_o antecedent_n light_n of_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n which_o must_v excite_v it_o and_o how_o but_o miraculous_o water_n in_o baptism_n shall_v be_v a_o instrument_n of_o convey_v holy_a love_n or_o knowledge_n no_o man_n conceive_v for_o 1._o our_o love_n of_o god_n be_v not_o put_v into_o the_o water_n 2._o if_o it_o be_v the_o water_n do_v not_o touch_v the_o soul_n 3._o if_o it_o do_v corporal_a contact_n or_o attingencie_n will_v not_o cause_v love_n the_o same_o be_v say_v of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v many_o papist_n be_v by_o protestant_n mistake_v in_o their_o doctrine_n de_fw-fr opere_fw-la operato_fw-la who_o speak_v but_o as_o distinguish_v it_o ab_fw-la opere_fw-la operantis_fw-la and_o when_o they_o have_v puzzle_v themselves_o to_o tell_v what_o the_o indelible_a character_n give_v by_o ordination_n be_v they_o can_v satisfactory_o carry_v it_o no_o high_a than_o with_o durandus_fw-la to_o say_v it_o be_v a_o relation_n that_o be_v a_o fix_a relation_n to_o the_o undertake_a work_n and_o a_o power_n right_a and_o obligation_n to_o it_o and_o they_o that_o tell_v we_o as_o joseph_n ange_fw-fr etc._n etc._n that_o ordination_n be_v a_o true_a sacrament_n though_o sinful_o use_v when_o give_v to_o a_o infant_n and_o a_o bedlam_n and_o that_o none_o hut_n durandus_fw-la deni_v it_o a_o false_a doctrine_n no_o doubt_n quia_fw-la deest_fw-la dispositio_fw-la recipientis_fw-la yet_o can_v tell_v we_o of_o no_o more_o that_o it_o do_v convey_v to_o the_o infant_n or_o bedlam-priest_n or_o bishop_n but_o a_o relation_n nor_o can_v they_o that_o say_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n assure_v we_o that_o any_o more_o be_v give_v by_o ordination_n and_o so_o of_o baptism_n and_o if_o they_o say_v that_o if_o the_o water_n be_v not_o the_o instrument_n of_o given-grace_n to_o the_o adult_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v to_o i_o other_o mean_n let_v they_o tell_v we_o if_o they_o can_v what_o they_o mean_v and_o what_o mean_v beside_o a_o moral_a mean_n it_o can_v be_v if_o they_o say_v that_o if_o god_n give_v not_o grace_v qualitative_a or_o active_a by_o it_o as_o a_o mean_n yet_o he_o give_v grace_n with_o it_o without_o any_o second_o cause_n i_o answer_v god_n can_v do_v so_o no_o doubt_n he_o can_v give_v grace_n while_o we_o be_v hear_v though_o inconsiderate_o without_o any_o use_n of_o the_o word_n hear_v and_o so_o in_o the_o time_n of_o baptise_v without_o any_o causality_n of_o baptism_n but_o he_o that_o will_v assert_v as_o in_o any_o miracle_n and_o immediate_a operation_n as_o sacrament_n must_v bring_v very_o clear_a proof_n of_o his_o assertion_n sure_o we_o be_v that_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v prerequisite_a in_o the_o adult_n and_o therefore_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o time_n of_o first-giving_a they_o by_o institution_n and_o we_o be_v all_o agree_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n sacred_a truth_n and_o goodness_n christ_n and_o his_o gracious_a benefit_n be_v objective_o set_v before_o we_o as_o moral_a mean_n of_o our_o information_n excitation_n and_o increase_n of_o faith_n and_o hope_n and_o love_n and_o when_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v for_o one_o way_n of_o give_v gracious_a act_n or_o quality_n he_o that_o will_v add_v another_o must_v prove_v it_o 4._o and_o the_o case_n be_v thus_o with_o the_o adult_n the_o instance_n of_o infant_n will_v not_o prove_v the_o sacrament_n no_o sacrament_n to_o the_o adult_n the_o noble_a subject_n and_o though_o god_n may_v immediate_o or_o miraculous_o at_o the_o same_o time_n give_v holy_a habit_n or_o act_n to_o infant_n yet_o it_o be_v past_a man_n conception_n how_o water_n or_o word_n shall_v be_v any_o cause_n of_o they_o any_o more_o on_o they_o than_o on_o the_o adult_n as_o aforesaid_a and_o he_o that_o will_v say_v that_o yet_o so_o it_o be_v though_o we_o know_v not_o how_o as_o the_o papist_n do_v about_o transubstantiation_n must_v first_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v so_o indeed_o we_o grant_v that_o the_o parent_n be_v to_o use_v it_o moral_o in_o dedicate_a their_o child_n to_o god_n and_o believe_v and_o covenant_v for_o they_o and_o that_o god_n use_v it_o as_o his_o invest_n or_o deliver_v sign_n moral_o to_o give_v the_o infant_n all_o the_o relative_n grace_n which_o
church_n of_o christ_n such_o danger_n will_v be_v but_o by_o accident_n as_o every_o necessary_a duty_n have_v its_o danger_n a_o love_a melt_a lamentation_n for_o that_o violation_n of_o charity_n which_o your_o own_o and_o their_o division_n have_v be_v guilty_a of_o be_v like_a to_o profit_v humble_a soul_n that_o love_v the_o truth_n and_o if_o they_o be_v such_o as_o will_v not_o endure_v the_o doctrine_n of_o love_n and_o unity_n what_o be_v they_o better_o than_o our_o parish_n 7._o none_o will_v be_v sad_a for_o the_o return_n of_o a_o brother_n to_o unity_n or_o love_n but_o those_o that_o grieve_v for_o your_o felicity_n not_o know_v what_o they_o do_v you_o will_v not_o forbear_v a_o return_n to_o god_n from_o any_o gross_a sin_n for_o fear_v of_o grieve_v man_n be_v not_o schism_n a_o gross_a sin_n be_v they_o not_o great_a that_o be_v direct_o against_o love_n and_o unity_n the_o soul_n and_o life_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v you_o no_o whit_n partial_a you_o will_v think_v that_o twenty_o heart_n make_v glad_a at_o your_o recovery_n for_o one_o that_o be_v make_v sad_a shall_v at_o least_o here_o leave_v the_o balance_n even_o a_o publish_a exhortation_n from_o you_o such_o as_o it_o seem_v you_o intend_v to_o draw_v your_o party_n to_o unity_n and_o communion_n with_o all_o true_a christian_n and_o dissuade_v they_o hereafter_o from_o censoriousness_n opposition_n to_o the_o ministry_n and_o separation_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o so_o difficult_a a_o point_n and_o so_o far_o from_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o new_a man_n may_v do_v more_o good_a than_o your_o oversee_n that_o church_n a_o hundred_o year_n it_o be_v not_o a_o trifle_n to_o hold_v a_o opinion_n that_o will_v warrant_v a_o man_n to_o have_v deny_v or_o separate_v from_o the_o universal_a visible_a church_n for_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n even_o for_o almost_o all_o the_o time_n of_o its_o existence_n since_o christ._n i_o forbear_v send_v you_o the_o form_n of_o concord_n mention_v till_o you_o be_v ready_a for_o it_o and_o shall_v desire_v it_o as_o judge_v it_o useful_a and_o then_o god_n willing_a i_o shall_v send_v it_o the_o lord_n i_o hope_v will_v clear_v up_o to_o you_o his_o mind_n concern_v the_o way_n in_o which_o he_o will_v have_v you_o walk_v and_o in_o the_o way_n of_o duty_n give_v you_o the_o peace_n which_o you_o desire_v and_o expect_v i_o rest_v your_o unworthy_a brother_n rich._n baxter_n to_o mr._n lamb_n sept._n 29._o 1658._o london_n the_o 15_o of_o january_n 1658._o dear_a sir_n these_o be_v to_o return_v you_o many_o thanks_o for_o your_o two_o letter_n which_o have_v be_v a_o very_a great_a comfort_n to_o i_o in_o my_o affliction_n and_o warfare_n that_o i_o be_o now_o engage_v in_o sir_n i_o think_v good_a to_o be_v silent_a a_o while_n and_o not_o to_o trouble_v you_o with_o any_o more_o letter_n till_o i_o have_v some_o new_a thing_n to_o say_v to_o you_o now_o what_o i_o have_v to_o say_v be_v reducible_a to_o three_o head_n 1._o i_o will_v inform_v you_o what_o god_n have_v do_v for_o i_o since_o my_o last_o 2._o what_o i_o have_v do_v i_o hope_v in_o his_o strength_n and_o that_o i_o may_v not_o doubt_v to_o say_v it_o be_v for_o he_o in_o the_o point_n of_o union_n and_o 3._o the_o present_a frame_n of_o my_o spirit_n and_o state_n 1._o for_o god_n deal_v with_o i_o sir_n after_o wait_v on_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o way_n sigh_v for_o light_n and_o pant_v after_o he_o for_o refresh_v as_o the_o heart_n pant_v after_o the_o water_n brook_n my_o light_n have_v break_v forth_o as_o the_o morning_n it_o have_v rose_n in_o obscurity_n and_o my_o darkness_n become_v as_o the_o noon_n day_n i_o see_v by_o experience_n that_o though_o i_o be_o dark_a god_n be_v light_a and_o though_o i_o be_o poor_a he_o be_v rich_a and_o i_o believe_v there_o be_v nothing_o i_o want_v but_o heaven_n be_v full_a of_o it_o the_o right_a notion_n of_o god_n universal_a church_n and_o the_o unity_n he_o will_v have_v among_o the_o member_n and_o indeed_o the_o necessity_n thereof_o upon_o the_o penalty_n of_o infinite_a damage_n to_o the_o most_o excellent_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o god_n have_v blessed_v i_o with_o the_o sght_n of_o and_o show_v i_o as_o in_o a_o glass_n the_o condition_n of_o all_o our_o congregation_n that_o refuse_v communion_n with_o other_o church_n of_o christ_n stand_v off_o from_o the_o main_a body_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a as_o christ_n part_n of_o that_o body_n as_o antichristian_a and_o so_o refuse_v to_o give_v or_o take_v influence_n for_o their_o comfort_n and_o succour_n it_o heal_v the_o whole_a but_o dreadful_o endanger_v those_o small_a part_n so_o divide_v just_o as_o it_o will_v endanger_v a_o troop_n or_o company_n that_o shall_v stand_v off_o from_o the_o main_a body_n of_o a_o great_a army_n that_o have_v a_o potent_a enemy_n engage_v in_o the_o field_n against_o they_o by_o this_o light_n i_o perceive_v our_o case_n namely_o that_o we_o be_v as_o you_o say_v guilty_a of_o schism_n the_o light_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v clear_a to_o i_o i_o now_o begin_v to_o be_v satisfy_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v visit_v i_o from_o a_o high_a in_o mercy_n and_o that_o all_o my_o inward_a opposition_n and_o outward_a too_o from_o my_o friend_n be_v of_o satan_n to_o stop_v i_o in_o a_o bless_a work_n i_o praise_v god_n i_o be_o now_o help_v to_o bear_v the_o reproach_n of_o my_o dear_a friend_n that_o pour_v contempt_n upon_o i_o daily_o as_o a_o most_o dreadful_a apostate_n a_o judas_n one_o that_o it_o have_v be_v good_a for_o never_o to_o have_v be_v bear_v one_o that_o though_o i_o be_v as_o the_o signet_n on_o god_n right_a hand_n i_o shall_v be_v pluck_v from_o thence_o other_o wish_v they_o have_v follow_v i_o to_o my_o grave_n when_o they_o go_v with_o i_o to_o baptism_n but_o it_o stir_v i_o not_o much_o for_o though_o their_o zeal_n for_o god_n and_o his_o truth_n and_o their_o love_n to_o christ_n and_o holiness_n and_o ability_n to_o suffer_v for_o christ_n be_v more_o than_o i_o yet_o my_o conscience_n tell_v i_o they_o be_v in_o a_o error_n and_o that_o i_o be_o sincere_a in_o all_o i_o do_v not_o sway_v by_o carnal_a consideration_n in_o which_o i_o be_o so_o manifest_a to_o their_o conscience_n that_o they_o be_v more_o trouble_v with_o i_o for_o that_o thing_n sake_n oh_o sir_n i_o admire_v how_o a_o man_n without_o the_o breastplate_n of_o righteousness_n hold_v up_o his_o head_n in_o such_o a_o day_n but_o withal_o i_o experience_v the_o worth_n and_o excellency_n thereof_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n my_o righteousness_n i_o will_v hold_v fast_o and_o my_o heart_n shall_v not_o reprove_v i_o all_o my_o day_n my_o conscience_n tell_v i_o which_o be_v my_o great_a comfort_n that_o i_o have_v not_o wicked_o depart_v from_o my_o god_n that_o i_o will_v not_o break_v the_o least_o of_o his_o law_n willing_o to_o gain_v a_o thousand_o world_n that_o the_o love_n i_o bear_v to_o my_o saviour_n and_o his_o most_o excellent_a body_n the_o church_n be_v the_o chief_a thing_n that_o inspire_v i_o in_o all_o i_o do_v now_o 2._o touch_v what_o i_o have_v do_v towards_o union_n since_o i_o write_v last_o it_o be_v as_o follow_v 1._o i_o have_v be_v at_o mr._n g.'s_n congregation_n from_o who_o i_o depart_v to_o acknowledge_v my_o sin_n in_o separate_v from_o they_o upon_o such_o silly_a ground_n and_o have_v offer_v myself_o to_o break_v bread_n with_o they_o if_o they_o please_v but_o withal_o tell_v the_o whole_a church_n that_o for_o two_o reason_n i_o can_v not_o come_v so_o close_o to_o they_o as_o heretofore_o 1._o because_o of_o my_o relation_n to_o the_o poor_a people_n i_o now_o serve_v be_v not_o yet_o well_o lodge_v in_o some_o safe_a place_n and_o 2._o because_o of_o some_o scruple_n in_o my_o mind_n whether_o independency_n do_v not_o infer_v schism_n in_o the_o church_n universal_a as_o that_o independency_n upon_o the_o narrow_a foot_n i_o mean_v that_o which_o divide_v communion_n with_o saint_n as_o saint_n do_v so_o my_o refuse_v communion_n with_o they_o make_v i_o guilty_a of_o schism_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o particular_a i_o do_v not_o doubt_v it_o and_o our_o anabaptist_n be_v their_o natural_a offspring_n but_o how_o to_o determine_v my_o duty_n in_o respect_n of_o mr._n goodwin_n church_n from_o who_o i_o separate_v and_o with_o who_o i_o be_v for_o many_o year_n join_v i_o know_v not_o consider_v their_o principle_n be_v large_a for_o communion_n than_o other_o 2._o among_o ourselves_o i_o have_v private_o urge_v to_o my_o friend_n enlarge_n considerable_o 3._o i_o have_v myself_o with_o my_o family_n frequent_v
conversation_n among_o all_o protestant_n and_o upon_o avoid_v division_n among_o christ_n follower_n as_o that_o whatever_o obstruct_v these_o concern_v he_o be_v impatient_a of_o and_o warm_a against_o truth_n peace_n and_o love_n be_v he_o a_o votary_n to_o and_o martyr_n for_o and_o hereunto_o do_v he_o devote_v most_o of_o his_o life_n and_o labour_n dicam_fw-la quod_fw-la res_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v scandalous_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v division_n distance_n animosity_n and_o contention_n among_o christian_n protestant_n dissenter_n against_o each_o other_o and_o in_o the_o bowel_n of_o each_o party_n but_o much_o hereof_o arise_v from_o unhappy_a temper_n self-ignorance_n confidence_n and_o inobservance_n want_v of_o frequent_a patient_a and_o calm_a conference_n and_o impartial_a debate_n about_o thing_n controvert_v addictedness_n to_o self-interest_n and_o reputation_n with_o our_o respective_a party_n impatience_n of_o severe_a thought_n and_o study_n and_o of_o impartial_a consideration_n before_o we_o fix_v and_o pass_v our_o judgement_n take_v thing_n too_o much_o upon_o trust_n prejudice_n against_o those_o who_o sentiment_n be_v different_a from_o our_o own_o lay_v too_o great_a a_o weight_n upon_o eccentrical_a and_o mean_a thing_n pry_v too_o bold_o into_o and_o talk_v too_o confidently●_n about_o thing_n unrevealed_a or_o but_o dark_o hint_v to_o we_o in_o the_o sacred_a text_n and_o represent_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o christianity_n in_o our_o own_o artificial_a term_n and_o scheme_n and_o so_o confine_v the_o interest_n grace_n and_o heart_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n to_o our_o respective_a party_n as_o if_o we_o have_v forget_v or_o have_v never_o read_v rom._n 14._o 17_o 19_o act_n 10_o 34_o 35._o gal._n 6._o 14_o 16._o and_o eph._n 4._o 1_o 〈◊〉_d that_o person_n who_o thought_n heart_n and_o life_n shall_v meet_v i_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o reach_v of_o 2_o pet._n i._o i_o ii_o shall_v have_v my_o hearty_a love_n and_o service_n although_o he_o determine_v never_o to_o hear_v i_o preach_v or_o to_o communicate_v with_o i_o all_o his_o day_n through_o the_o impression_n of_o his_o education_n or_o acquaintance_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n i_o shall_v be_v loath_a that_o such_o a_o narrow_a thought_n shall_v be_v the_o principle_n poise_n and_o conduct_n of_o my_o church_n fellowship_n spirit_n or_o behaviour_n god_n have_v i_o doubt_v not_o his_o eminent_a and_o valuable_a servant_n in●all_v party_n and_o persuasion_n among_o christian_n a_o heavenly_a mind_n and_o life_n be_v all_o in_o all_o with_o i_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o god_n have_v many_o precious_a faithful_a one_o among_o the_o man_n call_v independent_n presbyterian_o ●●●nabap●ists_n prelatical_a and_o i_o humble_o judge_v it_o reasonable_a that_o 1._o the_o miscarriage_n of_o former_a party_n be_v not_o impute_v to_o succeed_a party_n who_o own_v not_o nor_o abet_v their_o principle_n as_o productive_a of_o such_o practical_a enormity_n 2._o that_o the_o miscarriage_n of_o some_o particular_a person_n be_v not_o charge_v on_o the_o rest_n until_o they_o profess_v or_o manifest_v their_o approbation_n of_o they_o 3._o that_o what_o be_v repent_v of_o and_o pardon_v be_v not_o so_o receive_v as_o to_o foment_n division_n and_o recrimination_n 4._o that_o my_o trust_n from_o mr._n baxter_n and_o faithfulness_n to_o he_o and_o to_o posterity_n be_v not_o construe_v as_o the_o result_n of_o any_o spleen_n in_o i_o against_o any_o person_n or_o party_n mention_v in_o this_o follow_a history_n 5._o and_o that_o we_o all_o value_n that_o in_o one_o another_o which_o god_n think_v lovely_a where_o he_o form_n and_o find_v it_o and_o 6._o o_o utinam_fw-la that_o we_o form_v no_o other_o test_n and_o canon_n of_o christian_a orthodoxy_n and_o save_v soundness_n and_o christian_a fellowship_n than_o what_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n give_v we_o as_o explicatory_a of_o the_o christian_a baptismal_a creed_n and_o covenant_n as_o influence_v we_o into_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o heavenly_a hope_n and_o joy_n i_o think_v once_o to_o have_v give_v the_o world_n a_o faithful_a abstract_n of_o mr_n baxter_n doctrine_n or_o judgement_n contain_v the_o sense_n of_o what_o he_o hold_v about_o justification_n faith_n work_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o lay_v aside_o his_o term_n of_o art_n that_o hereby_o the_o reader_n may_v discern_v the_o consonancy_n of_o it_o to_o the_o sacred_a text_n and_o to_o the_o doctrinal_a confession_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n his_o consistence_n with_o himself_o and_o his_o near_a approach_n in_o judgement_n to_o those_o from_o who_o he_o seem_v to_o differ_v much_o than_o the_o prejudice_v adversary_n be_v aware_a of_o but_o this_o must_v be_v a_o work_n of_o time_n if_o not_o a_o enterprise_n too_o great_a for_o i_o as_o i_o just_o fear_v it_o be_v but_o i_o will_v do_v by_o he_o as_o i_o will_v do_v by_o other_o and_o have_v they_o do_v by_o i_o viz._n give_v he_o his_o own_a explication_n of_o the_o baptismal_a creed_n and_o covenant_n as_o a_o fit_a test_n to_o try_v his_o judgement_n by_o and_o if_o his_o doctrine_n in_o his_o other_o treatise_n consist_v herewith_o other_o perhaps_o will_v see_v more_o cause_n to_o think_v he_o orthodox_n in_o the_o most_o weighty_a article_n and_o less_o to_o be_v suspect_v notwithstanding_o his_o different_a modes_n of_o speech_n the_o thing_n profess_o believe_v by_o he_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o his_o christian_a concord_n be_v that_o there_o be_v one_o only_a god_n the_o father_n infinite_a in_o be_v wisdom_n goodness_n and_o power_n the_o maker_n preserver_n and_o disposer_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o the_o most_o just_a and_o merciful_a lord_n of_o all._n that_o mankind_n be_v fall_v by_o sin_n from_o god_n and_o happiness_n under_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n the_o curse_n of_o his_o law_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a son_n to_o be_v their_o redeemer_n who_o be_v god_n and_o one_o with_o the_o father_n do_v take_v to_o he_o our_o nature_n and_o become_v man_n be_v conceive_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o bear_v of_o she_o and_o name_v jesus_n christ_n and_o have_v live_v on_o earth_n without_o sin_n and_o wrought_v many_o miracle_n for_o a_o witness_n of_o his_o truth_n he_o give_v up_o himself_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o a_o ransom_n for_o 〈◊〉_d in_o suffer_v death_n on_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v bury_v he_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o in_o glory_n with_o the_o father_n and_o have_v ordain_v that_o all_o that_o true_o repent_v and_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o love_v he_o above_o all_o thing_n and_o sincere_o obey_v he_o and_o that_o to_o the_o death_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o they_o that_o will_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v and_o commend_v his_o minister_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o world_n he_o will_v come_v again_o and_o raise_v the_o body_n of_o all_o man_n from_o death_n and_o will_v set_v all_o the_o world_n before_o he_o to_o be_v judge_v according_a to_o what_o they_o have_v do_v in_o the_o body_n and_o he_o will_v adjudge_v the_o righteous_a to_o life_n everlasting_a and_o the_o rest_n to_o everlasting_a punishment_n which_o shall_v be_v execute_v according_o that_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v ●●nt_v from_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n to_o inspire_v and_o guide_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n that_o they_o may_v full_o reveal_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o multitude_n of_o evident_a miracle_n and_o wonderful_a gift_n to_o be_v the_o great_a witness_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n and_o also_o to_o dwell_v and_o work_v in_o all_o that_o be_v draw_v to_o believe_v that_o be_v first_o join_v to_o christ_n their_o head_n and_o into_o one_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n and_o so_o pardon_v and_o make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n they_o may_v be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n sanctify_v to_o christ_n and_o may_v mortify_v the_o fesh_n and_o overcome_v the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o be_v zealous_a of_o good_a work_n may_v serve_v god_n in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o may_v live_v in_o the_o special_a love_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o in_o hope_n of_o christ_n come_v and_o of_o everlasting_a life_n in_o the_o belief_n hereof_o the_o thing_n consent_v to_o be_v as_o follow_v that_o he_o hearty_o take_v this_o one_o god_n for_o his_o only_a god_n and_o his_o chief_a good_a and_o this_o jesus_n christ_n for_o his_o only_a lord_n redeemer_n and_o saviour_n and_o this_o holy_a ghost_n for_o his_o sanctifier_n and_o the_o doctrine_n by_o he_o reveal_v and_o seal_v by_o his_o miracle_n and_o now_o contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o take_v for_o the_o law_n of_o god_n
and_o the_o rule_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o life_n and_o repent_v unfeigned_o of_o his_o sin_n he_o do_v resolve_v through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n sincere_o to_o obey_v he_o both_o in_o holiness_n to_o god_n and_o righteousness_n to_o man_n and_o in_o special_a love_n to_o the_o saint_n and_o in_o communion_n with_o they_o against_o all_o the_o temptation_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o world_n and_o his_o own_o flesh_n and_o this_o to_o the_o death_n if_o therefore_o these_o thing_n be_v believe_v and_o consent_v to_o by_o he_o and_o if_o these_o thing_n do_v essentiate_v our_o save_v christianity_n and_o so_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o all_o one_o in_o christ_n why_o shall_v some_o different_a mode_n and_o form_n of_o speech_n wherewith_o these_o great_a substantial_o may_v and_o do_v consist_v obtain_v of_o man_n to_o think_v he_o heterodox_n because_o he_o use_v not_o their_o term_n and_o why_o shall_v such_o distance_n and_o discord_n be_v keep_v up_o among_o we_o whilst_o we_o all_o of_o we_o own_o all_o the_o forementioned_a article_n and_o be_v always_o ready_a on_o all_o side_n to_o renounce_v whatever_o opinion_n shall_v appear_v to_o overthrow_v or_o shake_v such_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o covenant_v term_n with_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o i_o can_v but_o believe_v that_o all_o christian_n serious_o bind_v for_o heaven_n and_o that_o be_v fix_v upon_o these_o truth_n be_v near_o each_o to_o other_o in_o their_o judgement_n than_o different_a modes_n of_o speech_n seem_v to_o represent_v they_o of_o such_o great_a consequence_n be_v true_a charity_n and_o candour_n among_o christian_n 3._o the_o reverend_a prelate_n and_o the_o minister_n and_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n may_v possible_o distaste_v his_o plainness_n with_o they_o and_o think_v he_o too_o severe_a upon_o they_o but_o 1._o they_o be_v no_o stranger_n to_o his_o profess_a and_o exemplify_v moderation_n who_o value_v their_o worth_n and_o learning_n more_o than_o he_o do_v who_o more_o endeavour_v to_o keep_v up_o church_n communion_n with_o they_o by_o pen_n discourse_n and_o practice_n though_o not_o exclusive_o who_o more_o sharp_o handle_v and_o more_o thorough_o write_v against_o and_o reprehend_v total_a separation_n from_o they_o than_o himself_o and_o what_o dissenter_n from_o they_o ever_o make_v fair_a and_o more_o noble_a overture_n or_o more_o judicious_a proposal_n for_o a_o large_a and_o last_a comprehension_n with_o they_o than_o they_o know_v he_o do_v and_o who_o more_o fair_o warn_v they_o of_o the_o dismal_a consequence_n and_o calamitous_a effect_n of_o so_o narrow_a the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o the_o strict_a act_n procure_v and_o execute_v against_o so_o many_o peaceable_a minister_n who_o thereby_o be_v silence_v imprison_a discourage_v and_o undo_v and_o how_o many_o soul_n and_o family_n be_v ruin_v and_o scandalize_v by_o their_o impose_v term_n another_o and_o that_o a_o solemn_a and_o great_a day_n will_v show_v ever_o long_o 2._o our_o author_n never_o yet_o endeavour_v to_o unchurch_n they_o nor_o to_o eclipse_v their_o worthy_n nor_o do_v he_o ever_o charge_v their_o great_a severity_n on_o they_o all_o he_o ever_o will_v acknowledge_v and_o he_o may_v true_o do_v it_o that_o they_o have_v great_a and_o excellent_a man_n and_o many_o such_o among_o they_o both_o of_o their_o lai●y_n and_o clergy_n 3._o he_o think_v what_o i_o be_o satisfy_v be_v true_a that_o many_o of_o they_o little_o know_v who_o and_o what_o be_v behind_o the_o curtain_n nor_o what_o design_v nor_o great_a service_n be_v do_v to_o france_n and_o rome_n hereby_o 4._o and_o his_o great_a suffering_n from_o they_o may_v well_o even_o as_o other_o thing_n abate_v their_o censure_v if_o not_o prevent_v too_o keen_a relentment_n of_o these_o historical_a account_n of_o they_o 5._o and_o to_o leave_v these_o thing_n out_o be_v more_o than_o mr._n baxter_n will_v allow_v i_o or_o admit_v of_o pardon_v one_o who_o act_n by_o order_n not_o of_o choice_n 4._o that_o such_o copious_a and_o prolix_a discourse_n shall_v be_v here_o insert_v about_o thing_n fit_a for_o oblivion_n than_o to_o be_v remember_v may_v seem_v liable_a to_o exception_n and_o distaste_v from_o some_o viz._n such_o discourse_n as_o respect_v the_o solemn_a league_n and_o covenant_n the_o oxford_n act_n etc._n etc._n thing_n now_o abandon_v and_o repeal_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n for_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n but_o 1._o those_o press_a act_n be_v yet_o upon_o record_n and_o so_o expose_v to_o the_o view_n of_o man_n from_o age_n to_o age._n 2._o they_o represent_v dissenter_n as_o a_o intolerable_a seed_n of_o men._n 3._o all_o reader_n will_v not_o ready_o discern_v what_o here_o be_v say_v by_o way_n of_o apology_n for_o those_o of_o who_o such_o act_n take_v hold_v 4._o hereby_o dissenter_n will_v appear_v to_o all_o succeed_a generation_n as_o a_o people_n worthy_a of_o nothing_o but_o national_a severity_n and_o restraint_n whence_o 5._o their_o enemy_n will_v be_v confirm_v in_o their_o groundless_a thought_n and_o censure_n of_o they_o 6._o this_o will_v not_o lead_v to_o that_o love_n and_o concord_n among_o all_o protestant_n which_o god_n law_n and_o the_o public_a interest_n and_o welfare_n of_o church_n and_o state_n require_v 7._o those_o thing_n abide_v so_o long_o in_o force_n and_o to_o such_o fatal_a dreadful_a purpose_n as_o that_o the_o effect_n thereof_o be_v feel_v by_o many_o family_n and_o person_n to_o this_o day_n 8._o and_o all_o this_o be_v but_o to_o discharge_v some_o of_o no_o small_a figure_n in_o their_o day_n from_o all_o obligation_n to_o perform_v what_o have_v be_v solemn_o vow_v to_o god_n sure_o such_o as_o never_o take_v that_o covenant_n can_v only_o disclaim_v all_o obligation_n on_o themselves_o to_o keep_v it_o by_o virtue_n of_o any_o such_o vow_n upon_o themselves_o but_o to_o discharge_v those_o that_o have_v take_v it_o from_o what_o therein_o they_o have_v vow_v to_o god_n to_o do_v till_o god_n himself_o discharge_v they_o or_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o intrinsic_a unalterable_a eu●●_n of_o the_o matter_n vow_v that_o no_o such_o vow_n shall_v stand_v be_v more_o than_o i_o dare_v undertake_v to_o prove_v at_o present_a or_o to_o vindicate_v in_o the_o great_a day_n however_o a_o man_n be_v own_o latitude_n of_o persuasion_n can_v as_o such_o absolve_v another_o nor_o eo_fw-la nomine_fw-la be_v another_o rule_n or_o law_n but_o 9_o if_o these_o long_a discourse_n be_v needful_a pertinent_a clear_a and_o strong_a as_o to_o the_o state_n of_o that_o a●●air_a their_o length_n may_v be_v bear_v with_o 10._o the_o author_n think_v it_o needful_a to_o have_v this_o set_v in_o the_o clear_a open_a light_n to_o disabule_v all_o that_o have_v be_v impose_v on_o by_o false_a or_o partial_a and_o defective_a history_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o to_o remove_v or_o prevent_v or_o allay_v scandal_n and_o censure_n for_o time_n to_o come_v 11._o and_o if_o such_o thing_n be_v also_o publish_v to_o make_v ourselves_o and_o other_o still_o more_o sensible_a of_o what_o we_o owe_v to_o god_n and_o to_o our_o most_o gracious_a king_n and_o his_o late_a sovereign_a consort_n and_o our_o then_o most_o gracious_a queen_n mary_n not_o to_o be_v parallel_v in_o any_o history_n that_o i_o know_v of_o by_o any_o of_o her_o sex_n for_o all_o true_o royal_a excellency_n and_o to_o his_o parliament_n who_o have_v so_o much_o oblige_v we_o with_o free_v we_o from_o those_o so_o uncomfortable_a bond_n what_o fault_n can_v be_v impute_v to_o the_o publisher_n herein_o shall_v gratitude_n be_v think_v a_o crime_n though_o more_o copious_a in_o the_o material_n of_o it_o than_o may_v every_o way_n consist_v with_o the_o strict_a bound_n of_o accuracy_n 12._o i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v and_o not_o without_o cogent_a ground_n that_o very_o many_o reader_n now_o and_o hereafter_o will_v with_o the_o author_n have_v think_v i_o unfaithful_a to_o themselves_o and_o he_o have_v i_o not_o transmit_v to_o posterity_n what_o he_o leave_v and_o as_o he_o leave_v it_o for_o their_o use_n and_o i_o hope_v therefore_o that_o the_o reader_n will_v not_o interpret_v this_o publication_n as_o the_o product_n of_o a_o recriminate_a spirit_n god_n himself_o know_v it_o to_o be_v no_o such_o birth_n three_o the_o publication_n 1._o the_o author_n write_v it_o for_o this_o end_n 2._o he_o leave_v it_o with_o i_o to_o be_v publish_v after_o his_o death_n 3._o he_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o another_o and_o myself_o only_o by_o a_o write_v order_v to_o be_v give_v i_o after_o his_o death_n as_o my_o directory_n about_o the_o publication_n of_o his_o other_o manuscript_n which_o be_v many_o and_o of_o moment_n and_o if_o th●_n rest_v entrust_v with_o i_o about_o their_o be_v print_v one_o or_o
on_o the_o wax_n be_v cause_v by_o that_o on_o the_o seal_n therefore_o i_o do_v more_o of_o late_a than_o ever_o discern_v a_o necessity_n of_o a_o methodical_a procedure_n in_o maintain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n and_o of_o beginning_n at_o natural_a verity_n as_o presuppose_v fundamental_o to_o supernatural_a though_o god_n may_v when_o he_o please_v reveal_v all_o at_o once_o and_o even_o natural_a truth_n by_o supernatural_a revelation_n and_o it_o be_v a_o marvellous_a great_a help_n to_o my_o faith_n to_o find_v it_o build_v on_o so_o sure_a foundation_n and_o so_o consonant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n i_o be_o not_o so_o foolish_a as_o to_o pretend_v my_o certainty_n to_o be_v great_a than_o it_o be_v mere_o because_o it_o be_v a_o dishonour_n to_o be_v less_o certain_a nor_o will_v i_o by_o shame_n be_v keep_v from_o confess_v those_o infirmity_n which_o those_o have_v as_o much_o as_o i_o who_o hypocritical_o reproach_n i_o with_o they_o my_o certainty_n that_o i_o be_o a_o man_n be_v before_o my_o certainty_n that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n for_o quod_fw-la facit_fw-la notum_fw-la est_fw-la magis_fw-la notum_fw-la my_o certainty_n that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n be_v great_a than_o my_o certainty_n that_o he_o require_v love_n and_o holiness_n of_o his_o creature_n my_o certainty_n of_o this_o be_v great_a than_o my_o certainty_n of_o the_o life_n of_o reward_n and_o punishment_n hereafter_o my_o certainty_n of_o that_o be_v great_a than_o my_o certainty_n of_o the_o endless_a duration_n of_o it_o and_o of_o the_o immortality_n of_o individuate_n soul_n my_o certainty_n of_o the_o deity_n be_v great_a than_o my_o certainty_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n my_o certainty_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n in_o its_o essential_o be_v great_a than_o my_o certainty_n of_o the_o perfection_n and_o infallibility_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n my_o certainty_n of_o that_o be_v great_a than_o my_o certainty_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o many_o particular_a text_n and_o so_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o many_o particular_a doctrine_n or_o of_o the_o canonicalness_n of_o some_o certain_a book_n so_o that_o as_o you_o see_v by_o what_o gradation_n my_o understanding_n do_v proceed_v so_o also_o that_o my_o certainty_n differ_v as_o the_o evidence_n differ_v and_o they_o that_o have_v attain_v to_o great_a perfection_n and_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o certainty_n than_o i_o shall_v pity_v i_o and_o produce_v their_o evidence_n to_o help_v i_o and_o they_o that_o will_v begin_v all_o their_o certainty_n with_o that_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o principium_fw-la cognoscendi_fw-la may_v meet_v i_o at_o the_o same_o end_n but_o they_o must_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o undertake_v to_o prove_v to_o a_o heathen_a or_o infidel_n the_o be_v of_o a_o god_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o holiness_n and_o the_o certainty_n of_o a_o reward_n or_o punishment_n even_o while_o he_o yet_o deni_v the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o order_n to_o his_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v true_a 6._o in_o my_o young_a year_n my_o trouble_n for_o sin_n be_v most_o about_o my_o actual_a fail_n in_o thought_n word_n or_o action_n except_o hardness_n of_o heart_n of_o which_o more_o anon_o but_o now_o i_o be_o much_o more_o trouble_a for_o ●nward_a defect_n and_o omission_n or_o want_n of_o the_o vital_a duty_n or_o grace_n in_o the_o soul_n my_o daily_a trouble_n be_v so_o much_o for_o my_o ignorance_n of_o god_n and_o weakness_n of_o belief_n and_o want_v of_o great_a love_n to_o god_n and_o strangeness_n to_o he_o and_o to_o the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o for_o want_v of_o a_o great_a willingness_n to_o die_v and_o longing_n to_o be_v with_o god_n in_o heaven_n as_o that_o i_o take_v not_o some_o immorality_n though_o very_o great_a to_o be_v in_o themselves_o so_o great_a and_o odious_a sin_n if_o they_o can_v be_v find_v as_o separate_v from_o these_o have_v i_o all_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o world_n how_o glad_o shall_v i_o give_v they_o for_o a_o full_a knowledge_n belief_n and_o love_n of_o god_n and_o everlasting_a glory_n these_o want_n be_v the_o great_a burden_n of_o my_o life_n which_o oft_o make_v my_o life_n itself_o a_o burden_n and_o i_o can_v find_v any_o hope_n of_o reach_v so_o high_a in_o these_o while_o i_o be_o in_o the_o flesh_n as_o i_o once_o hope_v before_o this_o time_n to_o have_v attain_v which_o make_v i_o the_o weary_a of_o this_o sinful_a world_n which_o be_v honour_v with_o so_o little_a of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n 7._o heretofore_o i_o place_v much_o of_o my_o religion_n in_o tenderness_n of_o heart_n and_o grieve_v for_o sin_n and_o penitential_a tear_n and_o less_o of_o it_o in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o study_v his_o love_n and_o goodness_n and_o in_o his_o joyful_a praise_n than_o now_o i_o do_v then_o i_o be_v little_a sensible_a of_o the_o greatness_n and_o excellency_n of_o love_n and_o praise_n though_o i_o cold_o speak_v the_o same_o word_n in_o its_o commendation_n as_o now_o i_o do_v and_o now_o i_o be_o less_o trouble_v for_o want_n of_o grief_n and_o tear_n though_o i_o more_o value_n humility_n and_o refuse_v not_o needful_a humiliation_n but_o my_o conscience_n now_o look_v at_o love_n and_o delight_n in_o god_n and_o praise_v he_o as_o the_o top_n of_o all_o my_o religious_a duty_n for_o which_o it_o be_v that_o i_o value_v and_o use_v the_o rest_n 8._o my_o judgement_n be_v much_o more_o for_o frequent_v and_o serious_a meditation_n on_o the_o heavenly_a blessedness_n than_o it_o be_v heretofore_o in_o my_o young_a day_n i_o than_o think_v that_o a_o sermon_n of_o the_o attribute_n of_o god_n and_o the_o joy_n of_o heaven_n be_v not_o the_o most_o excellent_a and_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v every_o body_n know_v this_o that_o god_n be_v great_a and_o good_a and_o that_o heaven_n be_v a_o bless_a place_n i_o have_v rather_o hear_v how_o i_o may_v attain_v it_o and_o nothing_o please_v i_o so_o well_o as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o regeneration_n and_o the_o mark_n of_o sincerity_n which_o be_v because_o it_o be_v suitable_a to_o i_o in_o that_o state_n but_o now_o i_o have_v rather_o read_v hear_v or_o meditate_v on_o god_n and_o heaven_n than_o on_o any_o other_o subject_a for_o i_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v the_o object_n that_o alter_v and_o elevate_v the_o mind_n which_o will_v be_v such_o as_o that_o be_v which_o it_o most_o frequent_o feed_v on_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o useful_a to_o our_o comfort_n to_o be_v much_o in_o heaven_n in_o our_o believe_a thought_n but_o that_o be_v must_v animate_v all_o our_o other_o duty_n and_o fortify_v we_o against_o every_o temptation_n and_o sin_n and_o that_o the_o love_n of_o the_o end_n be_v it_o that_o be_v the_o poise_n or_o spring_n which_o set_v every_o wheel_n a_o go_v and_o must_v put_v we_o on_o to_o all_o the_o mean_n and_o that_o a_o man_n be_v no_o more_o a_o christian_a indeed_o than_o he_o be_v heavenly_a 9_o i_o be_v once_o wont_a to_o meditate_v most_o on_o my_o own_o heart_n and_o to_o dwell_v all_o at_o home_n and_o look_v little_o high_o i_o be_v still_o pore_v either_o on_o my_o sin_n or_o want_v or_o examine_v my_o sincerity_n but_o now_o though_o i_o be_o great_o convince_v of_o the_o need_n of_o heart-acquaintance_n and_o employment_n yet_o i_o see_v more_o need_n of_o a_o high_a work_n and_o that_o i_o shall_v look_v often_o upon_o christ_n and_o god_n and_o heaven_n than_o upon_o my_o own_o heart_n at_o home_n i_o can_v find_v distemper_n to_o trouble_v i_o and_o some_o evidence_n of_o my_o peace_n but_o it_o be_v above_o that_o i_o must_v find_v matter_n of_o delight_n and_o joy_n and_o love_n and_o peace_n itself_o therefore_o i_o will_v have_v one_o think_v at_o home_n upon_o myself_o and_o sin_n and_o many_o think_v above_o upon_o the_o high_a and_o amiable_a and_o beatify_a object_n 10._o heretofore_o i_o know_v much_o less_o than_o now_o and_o yet_o be_v not_o half_a so_o much_o acquaint_v with_o my_o ignorance_n i_o have_v a_o great_a delight_n in_o the_o daily_a new_a discovery_n which_o i_o make_v and_o of_o the_o light_n which_o shine_v in_o upon_o i_o like_o a_o man_n that_o come_v into_o a_o country_n where_o he_o never_o be_v before_o but_o i_o little_o know_v either_o how_o imperfect_o i_o understand_v those_o very_a point_n who_o discovery_n so_o much_o delight_v i_o nor_o how_o much_o may_v be_v say_v against_o they_o nor_o how_o many_o thing_n i_o be_v yet_o a_o stranger_n to_o but_o now_o i_o find_v far_o great_a darkness_n upon_o all_o thing_n and_o perceive_v how_o very_a little_a it_o be_v that_o we_o know_v in_o comparision_n of_o that_o which_o we_o be_v ignorant_a of_o and_z and_z have_v
surfeit_v with_o human_a applause_n and_o all_o worldly_a thing_n appear_v most_o vain_a and_o unsatisfactory_a when_o we_o have_v try_v they_o most_o but_o though_o i_o feel_v that_o this_o have_v some_o hand_n in_o the_o effect_n yet_o as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v perceive_v the_o knowledge_n of_o man_n nothingness_n and_o god_n transcendent_a greatness_n with_o who_o it_o be_v that_o i_o have_v most_o to_o do_v and_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o brevity_n of_o humane_a thing_n and_o the_o nearness_n of_o eternity_n be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o this_o effect_n which_o some_o have_v impute_v to_o selfconceitedness_a and_o morosity_n 31._o i_o be_o more_o and_o more_o please_v with_o a_o solitary_a life_n and_o though_o in_o a_o way_n of_o self-denial_n i_o can_v submit_v to_o the_o most_o public_a life_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n when_o he_o require_v it_o and_o will_v not_o be_v unprofitable_a that_o i_o may_v be_v private_a yet_o i_o must_v confess_v it_o be_v much_o more_o please_v to_o myself_o to_o be_v retire_v from_o the_o world_n and_o to_o have_v very_o little_a to_o do_v with_o man_n and_o to_o converse_v with_o god_n and_o conscience_n and_o good_a book_n of_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v my_o heart_n in_o my_o divine_a life_n part_v iii_o 32._o though_o i_o be_v never_o much_o tempt_v to_o the_o sin_n of_o covetousness_n yet_o my_o fear_n of_o die_v be_v wont_a to_o tell_v i_o that_o i_o be_v not_o sufficient_o loosen_v from_o this_o world_n but_o i_o find_v that_o it_o be_v comparative_o very_o easy_a to_o i_o to_o be_v loose_a from_o this_o world_n but_o hard_o to_o live_v by_o faith_n above_o to_o despise_v earth_n be_v easy_a to_o i_o but_o not_o so_o easy_a to_o be_v acquaint_v and_o conversant_a in_o heaven_n i_o have_v nothing_o in_o this_o world_n which_o i_o can_v not_o easy_o let_v go_v but_o to_o get_v satisfy_v apprehension_n of_o the_o other_o world_n be_v the_o great_a and_o grievous_a difficulty_n 33._o i_o be_o much_o more_o apprehensive_a than_o long_o ago_o of_o the_o odiousness_n and_o danger_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o pride_n scarce_o any_o sin_n appear_v more_o odious_a to_o i_o have_v daily_o more_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o lamentable_a naughtiness_n and_o frailty_n of_o man_n and_o of_o the_o mischief_n of_o that_o sin_n and_o especial_o in_o matter_n spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a i_o think_v so_o far_o as_o any_o man_n be_v proud_a he_o be_v kin_n to_o the_o devil_n and_o utter_o a_o stranger_n to_o god_n and_o to_o himself_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o possible_a sin_n to_o man_n that_o still_o carry_v about_o with_o they_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n such_o humble_v matter_n of_o remedy_n as_o we_o all_o do_v 34._o i_o more_o than_o ever_o lament_v the_o unhappiness_n of_o the_o nobility_n gentry_n and_o great_a one_o of_o the_o world_n who_o live_v in_o such_o temptation_n to_o sensuality_n curiosity_n and_o waste_v of_o their_o time_n about_o a_o multitude_n of_o little_a thing_n and_o who_o life_n be_v too_o often_o the_o transcript_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o sodom_n pride_n fullness_n of_o bread_n and_o abundance_n of_o idleness_n and_o want_v of_o compassion_n to_o the_o poor_a and_o i_o more_o value_v the_o life_n of_o the_o poor_a labour_a man_n but_o especial_o of_o he_o that_o have_v neither_o poverty_n nor_o riches_n 35._o i_o be_o much_o more_o sensible_a than_o heretofore_o of_o the_o breadth_n and_o length_n and_o depth_n of_o the_o radical_a universal_a odious_a sin_n of_o selfishness_n and_o therefore_o have_v write_v so_o much_o against_o it_o and_o of_o the_o excellency_n and_o necessity_n of_o self-denial_n and_o of_o a_o public_a mind_n and_o of_o love_v our_o neighbour_n as_o ourselves_o 36._o i_o be_o more_o and_o more_o sensible_a that_o most_o controversy_n have_v more_o need_n of_o right_n state_v than_o of_o debate_v and_o if_o my_o skill_n be_v increase_v in_o any_o thing_n it_o be_v in_o that_o in_o narrow_a controversy_n by_o explication_n and_o separate_v the_o real_a from_o the_o verbal_a and_o prove_v to_o many_o contender_n that_o they_o differ_v less_o than_o they_o think_v they_o do_v 37._o i_o be_o more_o solicitous_a than_o i_o have_v be_v about_o my_o duty_n to_o god_n and_o less_o solicitous_a about_o his_o deal_n with_o i_o as_o be_v assure_v that_o he_o will_v do_v all_o thing_n well_o and_o as_o acknowledge_v the_o goodness_n of_o all_o the_o declaration_n of_o his_o holiness_n even_o in_o the_o punishment_n of_o man_n and_o as_o know_v that_o there_o be_v no_o rest_n but_o in_o the_o will_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n 38._o though_o my_o work_n be_v never_o such_o as_o can_v be_v any_o temptation_n to_o i_o to_o dream_v of_o oblige_v god_n by_o proper_a merit_n in_o commutative_a justice_n yet_o one_o of_o the_o most_o ready_a constant_a undoubted_a evidence_n of_o my_o uprightness_n and_o interest_n in_o his_o covenant_n be_v the_o consciousness_n of_o my_o live_n as_o devote_v to_o he_o and_o i_o the_o easy_o believe_v the_o pardon_n of_o my_o fail_n through_o my_o redeemer_n while_o i_o know_v that_o i_o serve_v no_o other_o master_n and_o that_o i_o know_v no_o other_o end_n or_o trade_n or_o business_n but_o that_o i_o be_o employ_v in_o his_o work_n and_o make_v it_o the_o business_n of_o my_o life_n and_o live_v to_o he_o in_o the_o world_n notwithstanding_o my_o infirmity_n and_o this_o bent_n and_o business_n of_o my_o life_n with_o my_o long_a desire_n after_o perfection_n in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o belief_n and_o love_n of_o god_n and_o in_o a_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a mind_n and_o life_n be_v the_o two_o stand_v constant_a discernible_a evidence_n which_o most_o put_v i_o out_o of_o doubt_n of_o my_o sincerity_n and_o i_o find_v that_o constant_a action_n and_o duty_n be_v it_o that_o keep_v the_o first_o always_o in_o sight_n and_o constant_a want_n and_o weakness_n and_o come_v short_a of_o my_o desire_n do_v make_v those_o desire_v still_o the_o more_o troublesome_a and_o so_o the_o more_o easy_o still_o perceive_v 39_o though_o my_o habitual_a judgement_n and_o resolution_n and_o scope_n of_o life_n be_v still_o the_o same_o yet_o i_o find_v a_o great_a mutability_n as_o to_o actual_a apprehension_n and_o degree_n of_o grace_n and_o consequent_o find_v that_o so_o mutable_a a_o thing_n as_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n will_v never_o keep_v its_o self_n if_o god_n be_v not_o its_o keeper_n when_o i_o have_v be_v serious_o muse_v upon_o the_o reason_n of_o christianity_n with_o the_o concurrent_a evidence_n methodical_o place_v in_o their_o just_a advantage_n before_o my_o eye_n i_o be_o so_o clear_a in_o my_o belief_n of_o the_o christian_a verity_n that_o s●tan_n have_v little_a room_n for_o a_o temptation_n but_o sometime_o when_o he_o have_v on_o a_o sudden_a set_v some_o temptation_n before_o i_o when_o the_o foresay_a evidence_n have_v be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n or_o less_o upon_o my_o thought_n he_o have_v by_o such_o surprise_v amaze_v i_o and_o weaken_v my_o faith_n in_o the_o present_a act_n so_o also_o as_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o trust_v in_o he_o sometime_o when_o the_o motive_n be_v clear_o apprehend_v the_o duty_n be_v more_o easy_a and_o delightful_a and_o at_o other_o time_n i_o be_o mere_o passive_a and_o dull_a if_o not_o guilty_a of_o actual_a despondency_n and_o distrust_n 40._o i_o be_o much_o more_o cautelous_a in_o my_o belief_n of_o history_n than_o heretofore_o not_o that_o i_o run_v into_o their_o extreme_a that_o will_v believe_v nothing_o because_o they_o can_v believe_v all_o thing_n but_o i_o be_o abundant_o satisfy_v by_o the_o experience_n of_o this_o age_n that_o there_o be_v no_o believe_v two_o sort_n of_o man_n ungodly_a man_n and_o partial_a man_n though_o a_o honest_a heathen_a of_o no_o religion_n may_v be_v believe_v where_o enmity_n against_o religion_n byass_v he_o not_o yet_o a_o deba●●●ed_a christian_n beside_o his_o enmity_n to_o the_o power_n and_o practice_n of_o his_o own_o religion_n be_v seldom_o without_o some_o further_a bias_n of_o interest_n or_o faction_n especial_o when_o these_o concur_v and_o a_o man_n be_v both_o ungodly_a and_o ambitious_a espouse_v a_o intere●●●t_o contrary_a to_o a_o holy_a heavenly_a life_n and_o also_o f●ctious_a embody_v himself_o with_o a_o sect_n or_o party_n suit_v to_o his_o spirit_n and_o design_n there_o be_v no_o believe_v his_o word_n or_o oath_n if_o you_o read_v any_o man_n partial_o bitter_a against_o other_o as_o differ_v from_o he_o in_o opinion_n or_o as_o cross_v to_o his_o greatness_n interest_n or_o design_n take_v heed_n how_o you_o believe_v any_o more_o than_o the_o historical_a evidence_n distinct_a from_o his_o word_n compel_v you_o to_o believe_v the_o prodigious_a lie_n which_o have_v be_v
save_v unless_o they_o will_v be_v my_o subject_n if_o you_o say_v that_o those_o may_v be_v save_v that_o sin_n for_o want_n of_o light_n i_o answer_v 1._o on_o this_o account_n your_o doctor_n teach_v the_o salvation_n of_o heathen_n be_v those_o of_o your_o church_n and_o so_o no_o otherwise_o of_o christian_n than_o of_o heathen_n 2._o either_o these_o want_v your_o light_n be_v in_o the_o church_n or_o out_o if_o in_o it_o than_o a_o man_n may_v be_v of_o the_o church_n without_o be_v a_o papist_n which_o be_v against_o your_o faith_n if_o out_o of_o it_o than_o it_o seem_v man_n out_o of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v save_v and_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n of_o more_o than_o his_o body_n which_o be_v against_o your_o faith_n and_o we_o 3._o who_o be_v it_o that_o have_v sufficient_a light_n if_o all_o that_o have_v hear_v or_o read_v the_o frivolous_a reason_n of_o the_o papist_n than_o your_o parent_n and_o almost_o all_o of_o we_o must_v perish_v but_o if_o it_o be_v any_o other_o light_n which_o must_v be_v have_v you_o know_v not_o what_o measure_n to_o give_v we_o to_o discern_v it_o nor_o ever_o will_v know_v and_o so_o you_o make_v your_o church_n invisible_a while_o the_o member_n of_o it_o can_v be_v know_v for_o none_o can_v know_v of_o another_o by_o your_o rule_n whether_o his_o light_n be_v sufficient_a or_o not_o and_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v not_o all_o the_o indian_n of_o america_n that_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n the_o member_n of_o your_o church_n for_o their_o light_n sure_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o show_v they_o either_o the_o pope_n or_o christ._n have_v he_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o right_a christian_n that_o can_v thus_o damn_v two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n for_o not_o believe_v in_o a_o wretch_n at_o rome_n that_o sometime_o be_v a_o infidel_n himself_o for_o so_o be_v pope_n john_n 23._o judge_v to_o be_v by_o the_o great_a general_n council_n at_o constance_n even_o one_o that_o believe_v no_o resurrection_n which_o be_v worse_o than_o a_o turk_n or_o jew_n or_o some_o heathen_n and_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n to_o i_o that_o if_o your_o own_o soul_n have_v ever_o be_v serious_o conversant_a with_o god_n in_o holy_a worship_n you_o can_v savour_v and_o suit_n with_o the_o canting_n and_o repetition_n and_o stage_n devotion_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o that_o a_o latin_a mass_n shall_v be_v believe_v to_o be_v the_o acceptable_a way_n of_o worship_n when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v so_o plain_o and_o copious_o disow_v that_o serve_v of_o god_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n 1_o cor._n 14._o pardon_v i_o if_o i_o entreat_v you_o to_o make_v a_o deliberate_a search_n into_o your_o heart_n and_o former_a way_n and_o try_v whether_o you_o converse_v with_o god_n in_o the_o spirit_n and_o be_v serious_a in_o your_o faith_n and_o love_n and_o worship_n if_o you_o be_v not_o no_o wonder_n if_o a_o unsound_a superfical_a religion_n be_v easy_o let_v go_v and_o such_o a_o unexperienced_a heart_n can_v suit_v with_o a_o cant_v carnal_a judicrous_a kind_n of_o devotion_n or_o if_o god_n so_o far_o forsake_v a_o soul_n that_o be_v not_o sound_a and_o serious_a in_o the_o religion_n once_o profess_v by_o you_o but_o if_o it_o be_v better_a with_o you_o than_o its_o strange_a your_o soul_n can_v so_o lose_v its_o relish_n and_o its_o stranger_n that_o one_o that_o be_v a_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o church_n and_o justify_v before_o shall_v turn_v to_o a_o sect_n that_o tell_v they_o they_o be_v not_o what_o they_o be_v and_o must_v come_v to_o they_o for_o what_o they_o have_v already_o and_o whereas_o all_o the_o pretence_n you_o show_v i_o for_o your_o change_n be_v the_o difference_n that_o you_o find_v among_o we_o protestant_n and_o our_o condemn_v one_o another_o do_v you_o not_o know_v that_o in_o policy_n great_a difference_n be_v tolerate_v among_o the_o papist_n under_o the_o name_n of_o divers_a order_n by_o far_o than_o any_o be_v between_o the_o presbyterian_a independent_a and_o episcopal_a protestant_n and_o that_o none_o but_o ungodly_a or_o uncharitable_a passionate_a people_n with_o we_o do_v deny_v any_o of_o these_o party_n to_o be_v true_a member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n if_o you_o here_o meet_v with_o any_o one_o that_o do_v condemn_v the_o other_o as_o no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n they_o speak_v not_o according_a to_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o you_o can_v no_o more_o charge_v we_o with_o the_o rail_n of_o every_o fellow_n that_o be_v drink_v with_o domineer_a pride_n or_o passion_n than_o with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o next_o scold_n or_o quaker_n or_o papist_n that_o you_o shall_v hear_v revile_v we_o i_o have_v say_v more_o to_o you_o than_o at_o first_o i_o intend_v i_o look_v on_o you_o as_o one_o about_o that_o age_n when_o conscience_n use_v to_o receive_v its_o first_o serious_a deep_a impression_n and_o the_o papist_n fall_v in_o with_o you_o just_a at_o that_o time_n i_o doubt_v before_o you_o have_v hearty_o receive_v the_o life_n of_o what_o before_o you_o profess_v and_o have_v time_n to_o be_v root_v and_o establish_v in_o the_o truth_n the_o opportunity_n serve_v they_o to_o your_o delusion_n that_o it_o may_v not_o prove_v to_o your_o everlasting_a destruction_n shall_v be_v the_o prayer_n and_o if_o you_o admit_v they_o the_o faithful_a endeavour_n of_o your_o servant_n in_o obedience_n to_o christ_n though_o to_o no_o vice-christ_n rich._n baxter_n dec._n 1._o 1660._o the_o answer_n to_o the_o lady_n anne_n lindsey_n letter_n to_o her_o mother_n madam_n it_o please_v the_o true_o honourable_a lady_n your_o mother_n to_o show_v i_o your_o letter_n direct_v to_o she_o from_o calais_n and_o to_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o send_v you_o my_o animadversion_n upon_o it_o which_o i_o be_o the_o willing_a to_o do_v because_o i_o perceive_v you_o have_v there_o contract_v the_o reason_n most_o common_o use_v for_o the_o pervert_n of_o the_o ignorant_a and_o which_o its_o likely_a have_v prevail_v most_o with_o yourself_o you_o must_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o be_v free_a and_o plain_a with_o you_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o god_n and_o of_o salvation_n i_o think_v it_o meet_v to_o leave_v the_o first_o part_n of_o your_o letter_n of_o the_o point_n of_o obedience_n to_o your_o mother_n animadversion_n it_o be_v the_o doctrinal_a part_n that_o i_o shall_v speak_v to_o you_o say_v that_o heresy_n against_o faith_n express_v by_o the_o name_n of_o sect_n cut_v we_o off_o from_o heaven_n and_o that_o a_o anathema_n be_v on_o they_o that_o preach_v any_o other_o doctrine_n than_o what_o be_v preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n how_o far_o heresy_n cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n i_o have_v distinct_o show_v you_o in_o the_o end_n of_o my_o book_n against_o mr._n johnson_n on_o that_o question_n but_o while_o you_o expect_v your_o mother_n shall_v consider_v of_o your_o reason_n you_o will_v not_o yourself_o peruse_v a_o answer_n to_o they_o which_o before_o be_v tender_v you_o who_o then_o can_v you_o blame_v if_o your_o soul_n be_v cheat_v brief_o you_o err_v in_o confound_a sect_n and_o heresy_n which_o be_v not_o the_o same_o heresy_n indeed_o which_o be_v false_a doctrine_n practical_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o essential_o of_o christian_a faith_n do_v cut_v man_n off_o from_o a_o state_n of_o life_n or_o show_v they_o to_o be_v alien_n but_o lesser_a error_n call_v heresy_n by_o ignorant_a or_o uncharitable_a man_n do_v un-church_n none_o herein_o i_o plead_v for_o you_o for_o if_o they_o do_v than_o woe_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o have_v so_o many_o error_n and_o if_o it_o be_v damnable_a to_o be_v a_o sect_n all_o papist_n must_v be_v damn_v they_o be_v as_o certain_o a_o sect_n as_o there_o be_v any_o in_o the_o world_n a_o corrupt_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n condemn_v the_o rest_n and_o pretend_v to_o be_v itself_o the_o whole_a be_v a_o sect_n or_o party_n of_o schismatic_n but_o such_o be_v the_o papist_n therefore_o they_o be_v a_o sect_n etc._n etc._n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o worst_a you_o consequent_o anathematise_v all_o papist_n by_o your_o sentence_n for_o heresy_n by_o your_o own_o sentence_n cut_v off_o man_n from_o heaven_n but_o popery_n be_v a_o bundle_n of_o heresy_n therefore_o it_o cut_v off_o man_n from_o heaven_n the_o minor_a i_o prove_v according_a to_o your_o church_n principle_n that_o doctrine_n be_v heresy_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o many_o of_o the_o papist_n doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o point_n of_o faith_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o pass_v by_o now_o all_o those_o point_n of_o popery_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o what_o the_o holy_a
call_v itself_o and_o such_o man_n holy_a dare_v you_o read_v what_o i_o have_v write_v of_o their_o holiness_n in_o my_o key_n chap._n 34._o detection_n 25._o or_o procure_v they_o to_o answer_v that_o and_o the_o rest_n there_o 2._o be_v all_o that_o be_v holy_a the_o rule_n or_o ruler_n to_o all_o other_o when_o you_o have_v converse_v among_o the_o papist_n one_o seven_o year_n if_o delusion_n leave_v you_o reason_n and_o impartiality_n you_o will_v be_v more_o capable_a of_o compare_v they_o with_o your_o own_o parent_n and_o such_o as_o you_o live_v among_o here_o and_o judge_v which_o be_v the_o more_o holy_a 3._o as_o catholic_n signify_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n or_o such_o be_v hold_v the_o catholic_n faith_n so_o other_o church_n be_v much_o more_o such_o than_o rome_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o universal_n church_n rome_n be_v none_o such_o the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o apostolic_a those_o that_o be_v most_o exact_o of_o the_o apostolic_a faith_n be_v to_o be_v call_v apostolic_a but_o woe_n to_o we_o if_o we_o be_v in_o that_o no_o better_a than_o rome_n 14._o you_o may_v see_v now_o what_o pitiful_a ground_n you_o have_v for_o fly_v into_o a_o pest-house_n as_o a_o city_n of_o refuge_n or_o for_o 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o clean_a room_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o 〈◊〉_d yourself_o to_o that_o room_n that_o have_v the_o most_o leprous_a infect_a person_n in_o it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o only_a church_n of_o god_n and_o for_o novelty_n o_o that_o the_o whole_a case_n 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v try_v and_o let_v that_o church_n that_o have_v introduce_v most_o novelty_n in_o faith_n and_o discipline_n and_o worship_n be_v most_o reject_v as_o unclean_a be_v you_o impartial_a the_o several_a 〈◊〉_d of_o our_o religion_n may_v put_v that_o part_n of_o the_o controversy_n 〈…〉_o you_o for_o our_o rule_n of_o religion_n be_v only_o the_o holy_a scripture_n if_o you_o show_v 〈◊〉_d that_o we_o misunder_o stand_v it_o we_o shall_v renounce_v that_o misunderstanding_n but_o to_o misunderstand_v scripture_n be_v to_o make_v a_o new_a rule_n no_o more_o than_o to_o understand_v your_o council_n and_o you_o know_v the_o scripture_n be_v no_o novelty_n but_o the_o elder_a your_o rule_n be_v council_n and_o papal_a decree_n which_o be_v new_a contradictory_n and_o endless_a and_o you_o never_o know_v when_o you_o have_v all_o and_o when_o your_o faith_n be_v at_o its_o maturity_n and_o no_o more_o to_o be_v add_v under_o pretence_n of_o determination_n if_o you_o dare_v read_v my_o 24_o 25_o and_o 35th_o decection_n in_o my_o key_n you_o may_v see_v quick_o who_o be_v the_o novelty_n one_o chief_a reason_n of_o my_o abhor_a popery_n be_v that_o i_o be_o absolute_o certain_a of_o its_o novelty_n madam_n i_o must_v take_v the_o freedom_n to_o say_v that_o when_o your_o priest_n dare_v neither_o dispute_n in_o your_o hear_n upon_o all_o the_o provoke_a offer_n that_o i_o make_v not_o yet_o will_v answer_v the_o book_n that_o i_o have_v write_v nor_o yet_o give_v you_o leave_v to_o read_v they_o they_o have_v imprison_v your_o soul_n in_o the_o partiality_n of_o a_o sect_n and_o while_o you_o be_v so_o unfaithful_a to_o yourself_o if_o you_o be_v miserable_a because_o you_o will_v not_o make_v use_n of_o the_o remedy_n and_o delude_v because_o you_o be_v resolve_v or_o oblige_v from_o come_v into_o the_o light_n your_o friend_n will_v have_v a_o easy_a account_n to_o make_v for_o you_o before_o god_n than_o yourself_o as_o have_v discharge_v their_o duty_n when_o you_o wilful_o refuse_v you_o what_o you_o read_v former_o against_o popery_n before_o you_o doubt_v or_o hear_v their_o fallacy_n be_v as_o nothing_o i_o suppose_v for_o i_o do_v not_o think_v you_o observe_v or_o remember_v the_o stress_n of_o the_o argumentation_n which_o you_o read_v we_o will_v have_v leave_n to_o pray_v for_o you_o though_o we_o can_v have_v leave_n to_o instruct_v you_o and_o god_n may_v hear_v we_o when_o you_o will_v not_o which_o i_o have_v the_o more_o hope_n of_o because_o of_o the_o piety_n of_o your_o parent_n and_o the_o prayer_n and_o tear_n of_o a_o tender_a mother_n pour_v out_o for_o you_o and_o your_o own_o well-meaning_a pious_a disposition_n i_o have_v know_v some_o such_o piety_n breed_v among_o we_o carry_v by_o mistake_n into_o their_o church_n but_o little_o initial_o breed_v there_o though_o they_o pretend_v that_o person_n of_o charity_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n with_o we_o must_v go_v to_o they_o to_o receive_v it_o i_o will_v i_o know_v whether_o you_o can_v say_v by_o true_a experience_n i_o feel_v no_o true_a love_n of_o god_n in_o my_o soul_n before_o but_o as_o soon_o as_o i_o turn_v papist_n i_o do_v and_o have_v now_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o his_o image_n which_o before_o i_o never_o have_v sure_o the_o change_n of_o a_o opinion_n about_o your_o pope_n and_o church_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o renew_n grace_n and_o love_n of_o god_n and_o heavenly_a mindedness_n be_v another_o i_o fear_v not_o your_o prayer_n bring_v your_o delusion_n and_o idolatry_n in_o your_o mother_n chamber_n as_o to_o herself_o while_o she_o walk_v uptight_o with_o god_n nothing_o that_o i_o find_v in_o your_o manual_n or_o the_o mass-book_n will_v ever_o have_v that_o power_n for_o the_o liberty_n of_o your_o religion_n which_o you_o say_v you_o hope_v for_o on_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o king_n declaration_n i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v but_o 1._o that_o i_o never_o love_v cruelty_n in_o any_o and_o it_o have_v increase_v my_o version_n to_o popery_n that_o i_o still_o observe_v that_o lie_a and_o uncharitable_a cruelty_n have_v be_v the_o two_o hand_n by_o which_o it_o make_v such_o a_o bustle_n in_o the_o world_n 2._o and_o that_o i●_n italy_n spain_n and_o austria_n bavaria_n etc._n etc._n will_v grant_v liberty_n to_o protestant_n we_o shall_v see_v more_o equality_n in_o the_o expectation_n of_o it_o here_o but_o if_o you_o get_v dominion_n as_o well_o as_o liberty_n it_o will_v be_v no_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o goodness_n of_o your_o cause_n our_o god_n our_o rule_n our_o hope_n our_o end_n and_o portion_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o inquisition_n prison_n and_o flame_n as_o in_o prosperity_n we_o have_v a_o kingdom_n that_o can_v be_v move_v and_o treasure_n that_o none_o can_v rob_v we_o of_o it_o be_v for_o that_o and_o not_o for_o worldly_a prosperity_n that_o we_o renounce_v all_o sensuality_n heresy_n superstition_n idolatry_n tyranny_n and_o false_a worship_n and_o desire_v in_o pure_a and_o spiritual_a worship_n with_o faith_n and_o patience_n to_o wait_v for_o the_o come_v and_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_v will_v destroy_v that_o wicked_a one_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n 2_o thess._n 2._o madam_n i_o rest_v your_o servant_n for_o and_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n rich._n baxter_n london_n jan._n 29._o 1660._o since_o the_o write_n of_o this_o i_o be_o inform_v that_o mr._n johnson_n be_v the_o person_n that_o you_o will_v have_v have_v to_o dispute_v for_o you_o and_o that_o do_v now_o and_o former_o dispute_v with_o dr._n gunning_n if_o so_o i_o like_v your_o condition_n or_o religion_n never_o the_o better_a for_o your_o deny_v it●_n when_o you_o confess_v he_o fear_v not_o any_o injury_n from_o i_o our_o religion_n be_v more_o a_o friend_n to_o truth_n for_o the_o honourable_a lady_n anne_n lindsey_n at_o calais_n this._n §_o 87._o when_o the_o king_n be_v receive_v with_o the_o general_n acclamation_n of_o his_o people_n the_o expectation_n of_o man_n be_v various_a according_a to_o their_o several_a interest_n and_o inducement_n some_o plain_a and_o moderate_a episcopal_a man_n think_v of_o reconciliation_n and_o union_n with_o the_o say_a presbyterian_o yea_o and_o a_o reward_n to_o the_o presbyterian_o for_o bring_v in_o the_o king_n the_o more_o politic_a man_n of_o the_o diocesan_n way_n understand_v that_o upon_o the_o king_n return_n all_o the_o law_n that_o have_v be_v make_v in_o nineteen_o year_n viz._n since_o his_o father_n depart_v from_o the_o parliament_n be_v void_a and_o so_o that_o all_o their_o ancient_a power_n and_o honour_n and_o revenue_n will_v fall_v to_o they_o without_o any_o more_o ado_n and_o that_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v but_o to_o keep_v the_o minister_n and_o people_n in_o quietness_n and_o hope_n till_o time_n shall_v full_o do_v the_o work_n some_o few_o presbyterian_o think_v the_o king_n will_v favour_v they_o as_o well_o as_o other_o for_o stir_v up_o the_o soldier_n and_o city_n to_o restore_v he_o in_o london_n i_o find_v that_o mr._n calamy_n for_o his_o age_n and_o political_a understanding_n and_o
the_o king_n and_o land_n and_o he_o tell_v i_o that_o beddingfield_n can_v have_v no_o right_a to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v sell_v and_o that_o the_o right_n be_v in_o the_o king_n who_o will_v ready_o grant_v it_o to_o the_o good_a use_n intend_v and_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v his_o best_a assistance_n to_o recover_v it_o and_o indeed_o i_o find_v he_o real_a to_o we_o in_o this_o business_n from_o first_o to_o last_o yet_o do_v beddingfield_n by_o the_o friendship_n of_o the_o attorney_n general_n and_o some_o other_o so_o delay_v the_o business_n as_o bring_v it_o to_o a_o suit_n in_o chancery_n he_o keep_v mr._n ashurst_n in_o a_o twelvemonth_n trouble_v before_o he_o can_v recover_v the_o land_n but_o when_o it_o come_v to_o judgement_n the_o lord_n chancellor_n speak_v very_o much_o against_o he_o and_o grant_v a_o decree_n for_o the_o new_a corporation_n for_o i_o have_v procure_v of_o he_o before_o the_o king_n be_v grant_v of_o a_o new_a corporation_n and_o mr._n ashurst_n and_o myself_o have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o member_n and_o we_o desire_v mr._n robert_n boyle_n a_o worthy_a person_n of_o learning_n and_o a_o public_a spirit_n and_o brother_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o cork_n to_o be_v precedent_n now_o call_v governor_n and_o i_o get_v mr._n ashurst_n to_o be_v treasurer_n again_o and_o some_o of_o the_o old_a member_n and_o many_o other_o godly_a able_a citizen_n make_v up_o the_o rest_n only_o we_o leave_v the_o nomination_n of_o some_o lord_n to_o his_o majesty_n as_o not_o presume_v to_o nominate_v such_o and_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n lord_n chamberlain_n and_o six_o or_o seven_o more_o be_v add_v but_o it_o be_v mr._n boyle_n and_o mr._n ashurst_n with_o the_o citizen_n that_o do_v the_o work_n but_o especial_o the_o care_n and_o trouble_v of_o all_o be_v on_o mr._n ashurst_n and_o thus_o that_o business_n be_v happy_o restore_v §_o 149._o and_o as_o a_o fruit_n of_o this_o his_o majesty_n favour_n mr._n elliot_n send_v the_o king_n first_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o then_o the_o whole_a bible_n translate_v and_o print_v in_o the_o indian_n language_n such_o a_o work_n and_o fruit_n of_o a_o plantation_n as_o be_v never_o before_o present_v to_o a_o king_n and_o he_o send_v word_n that_o next_o he_o will_v print_v my_o call_n to_o the_o unconveried_a and_o then_o the_o practice_n of_o piety_n but_o mr._n boyle_n send_v he_o word_n it_o will_v be_v better_o take_v here_o if_o the_o practic_n of_o piety_n be_v print_v before_o any_o thing_n of_o i_o at_o the_o present_a the_o revenue_n of_o the_o land_n go_v most_o to_o the_o maintain_n of_o the_o press_n upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o this_o work_n i_o have_v these_o letter_n of_o thanks_o from_o the_o court_n and_o governor_n in_o new-england_n and_o from_o mr._n norton_n and_o mr._n elliot_n reverend_a and_o much_o honour_a sir_n that_o we_o who_o be_v personal_o unknown_a to_o you_o do_v in_o this_o manner_n apply_v ourselves_o be_v render_v not_o only_o excusable_a but_o unless_o we_o will_v be_v ingrateful_a necessary_a by_o obligation_n from_o yourself_o with_o who_o the_o interest_n of_o poor_a stranger_n in_o a_o remote_a wilderness_n have_v be_v so_o regard_v as_o to_o show_v they_o kindness_n and_o that_o we_o believe_v upon_o the_o best_a account_n i.e._n for_o the_o lord_n sake_n we_o have_v understand_v from_o those_o that_o be_v employ_v by_o we_o with_o what_o love_a and_o cordial_a readiness_n you_o do_v upon_o request_n put_v forth_o yourself_o to_o further_a our_o concernment_n in_o our_o late_a application_n to_o his_o majesty_n for_o which_o act_n of_o favour_n and_o love_n we_o can_v but_o return_v our_o unfeigned_a thankful_a acknowledgement_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o we_o know_v no_o argument_n that_o can_v move_v your_o thought_n in_o it_o but_o that_o of_o the_o poor_a prophet_n widow_n viz._n that_o your_o charity_n do_v look_v upon_o your_o servant_n as_o fearer_n of_o the_o lord_n love_n unto_o who_o we_o persuade_v ourselves_o be_v the_o root_n that_o bear_v this_o fruit_n of_o love_n and_o kindness_n to_o we_o and_o that_o at_o such_o a_o time_n as_o this_o we_o trust_v the_o faithful_a god_n will_v not_o forget_v your_o work_n and_o labour_n of_o love_n which_o you_o have_v show_v towards_o his_o name_n in_o minister_a to_o the_o help_n of_o some_o part_n of_o his_o unworthy_a people_n who_o be_v exile_n in_o this_o wilderness_n we_o hope_v for_o his_o name_n sake_n sir_n you_o shall_v further_o oblige_v this_o poor_a people_n and_o do_v that_o will_v not_o be_v unpleasing_a to_o he_o who_o be_v our_o lord_n and_o you_o by_o the_o continuance_n of_o your_o love_n and_o improvement_n of_o your_o interest_n and_o opportunity_n in_o our_o behalf_n what_o advantage_n god_n have_v put_v into_o your_o hand_n and_o reserve_v your_o weak_a body_n unto_o by_o access_n unto_o person_n of_o honour_n and_o trust_v or_o otherways_o we_o hope_v it_o will_v be_v no_o grief_n of_o heart_n unto_o you_o another_o day_n if_o you_o shall_v improve_v part_n thereof_o this_o way_n ●_o all_o that_o we_o desire_v be_v liberty_n to_o serve_v god_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n liberty_n unto_o error_n and_o sin_n or_o to_o set_v up_o another_o rule_n beside_o the_o scripture_n we_o neither_o wish_v to_o be_v allow_v to_o ourselves_o nor_o will_v we_o willing_o allow_v it_o unto_o other_o if_o in_o any_o thing_n we_o shall_v mistake_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o we_o hope_v it_o be_v not_o in_o any_o fundamental_a matter_n that_o we_o do_v so_o have_v therein_o the_o concurrence_n of_o all_o the_o godly_a orthodox_n of_o the_o reform_a protestant_n religion_n so_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n in_o matter_n of_o a_o inferior_a and_o more_o difficult_a nature_n wherein_o godly_a christian_n may_v differ_v and_o shall_v bear_v difference_n without_o disturbance_n we_o be_v willing_a and_o desirous_a to_o live_v and_o learn_v by_o any_o orderly_a mean_n that_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o our_o learning_n and_o instruction_n and_o glad_a shall_v we_o be_v of_o the_o opportunity_n to_o learn_v in_o peace_n the_o liberty_n aforesaid_a we_o have_v by_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n now_o for_o many_o year_n enjoy_v and_o the_o same_o advantage_v and_o encourage_v by_o the_o constitution_n of_o our_o civil_a government_n according_a to_o concession_n and_o privilege_n grant_v and_o establish_v to_o we_o by_o the_o gracious_a letter_n patent_n of_o king_n charles_n the_o first_o the_o continuance_n of_o which_o privilege_n concern_v which_o his_o majesty_n late_a gracious_a letter_n to_o we_o have_v give_v we_o very_o great_a encouragement_n be_v our_o earnest_n and_o just_a desire_n for_o nothing_o that_o be_v unjust_a or_o not_o honest_a both_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o also_o of_o man_n do_v we_o seek_v or_o will_v allow_v ourselves_o in_o we_o hope_v we_o shall_v continue_v as_o faithful_a subject_n to_o his_o majesty_n according_a to_o our_o duty_n and_o be_v every_o way_n as_o beneficial_a to_o the_o interest_n of_o our_o nation_n under_o a_o elective_a government_n as_o under_o a_o impose_v but_o sundry_a particular_a person_n for_o private_a respect_n be_v as_o we_o hear_v earnest_o solicit_v to_o bring_v change_n upon_o we_o and_o do_v put_v in_o many_o high_a complaint_n against_o we_o in_o special_a that_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o quaker_n be_v our_o bitter_a and_o restless_a enemy_n complain_v of_o persecution_n but_o be_v themselves_o most_o troublesome_a and_o implacable_a per_n sec●●●●●_n of_o we_o who_o desire_v but_o to_o keep_v our_o own_o vineyard_n in_o peace_n our_o hope_n be_v in_o god_n who_o have_v hitherto_o help_v we_o and_o who_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v open_a for_o we_o a_o great_a and_o effectual_a door_n of_o liberty_n to_o serve_v he_o and_o opportunity_n to_o advance_v his_o name_n in_o this_o wilderness_n although_o there_o be_v many_o adversary_n among_o which_o he_o can_v raise_v up_o for_o we_o some_o friend_n as_o he_o have_v do_v yourself_o and_o as_o a_o friend_n love_v at_o all_o time_n and_o a_o brother_n be_v bear_v for_o adversity_n so_o may_v you_o in_o this_o time_n of_o our_o threaten_a adversity_n still_o perform_v the_o part_n of_o a_o friend_n as_o opportunity_n serve_v we_o shall_v be_v further_o much_o engage_v to_o thankfulness_n unto_o god_n and_o you_o who_o be_v sir_n your_o friend_n and_o brethren_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n jo._n endecott_n governor_n with_o the_o consent_n and_o by_o order_n of_o the_o general_n court_n boston_n in_o new-england_n this_o seven_o of_o august_n 1661._o to_o the_o reverend_n and_o much_o honour_a mr._n richard_n baxter_n one_o of_o his_o majesty_n chaplain_n in_o ordinary_a reverend_a and_o dear_a sir_n though_o you_o be_v unknown_a to_o i_o by_o face_n yet_o not_o
faithful_a minister_n be_v silence_v at_o once_o and_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o godly_a christian_n keep_v out_o of_o the_o church_n communion_n and_o persecute_v than_o one_o ceremony_n shall_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n or_o leave_v indifferent_a or_o one_o line_n reform_v in_o their_o common-prayer_n §_o 212._o but_o when_o dr._n pierce_n can_v not_o have_v leave_n to_o take_v up_o his_o dispute_n he_o sit_v upon_o i_o with_o kind_a persuasion_n and_o bishop_n morley_n and_o he_o first_o tell_v i_o that_o it_o be_v strange_a i_o shall_v make_v such_o a_o stir_n for_o other_o man_n liberty_n to_o forbear_v kneel_v in_o the_o act_n of_o receive_v when_o i_o profess_v myself_o to_o take_v it_o to_o be_v lawful_a i_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o may_v perceive_v then_o that_o i_o argue_v not_o from_o interest_n and_o opinion_n but_o from_o charity_n and_o for_o love_n and_o peace_n they_o tell_v i_o that_o it_o be_v we_o that_o have_v filleds_o the_o people_n head_n with_o these_o scruple_n and_o then_o when_o we_o shall_v dispossess_v they_o of_o they_o we_o plead_v for_o their_o liberty_n if_o i_o will_v but_o teach_v the_o people_n better_o they_o will_v quick_o be_v bring_v to_o obedience_n and_o will_v need_v no_o liberty_n i_o tell_v the_o bishop_n that_o he_o be_v much_o mistake_v both_o in_o say_v that_o we_o put_v these_o scruple_n into_o their_o head_n and_o in_o think_v that_o my_o power_n with_o they_o be_v so_o great_a as_o that_o i_o alone_o can_v preach_v they_o out_o he_o reply_v with_o great_a confidence_n that_o if_o i_o will_v but_o endeavour_v in_o good_a earnest_n to_o satisfy_v they_o they_o will_v quick_o be_v satisfy_v i_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o have_v both_o before_o the_o king_n and_o here_o declare_v that_o no_o man_n have_v write_v better_a about_o the_o ceremony_n than_o i_o have_v and_o have_v produce_v my_o book_n and_o therefore_o i_o think_v he_o confute_v himself_o for_o i_o write_v that_o book_n before_o the_o king_n come_v in_o even_o in_o the_o hea●_n of_o the_o nation_n zeal_n against_o ceremony_n and_o how_o then_o be_v it_o like_v that_o i_o put_v those_o scruple_n into_o their_o head_n when_o i_o write_v against_o they_o and_o i_o think_v write_v be_v the_o publick_a manner_n of_o teach_v where_o i_o speak_v to_o many_o thousand_o who_o can_v never_o hear_v my_o voice_n how_o then_o can_v he_o say_v that_o i_o write_v so_o well_o and_o yet_o do_v not_o reach_v the_o people_n what_o i_o write_v but_o i_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o must_v pardon_v i_o that_o in_o the_o pulpit_n i_o find_v great_a matter_n to_o do_v than_o to_o preach_v for_o ceremony_n and_o can_v never_o think_v that_o such_o kind_n of_o preach_v tend_v most_o to_o the_o save_n of_o man_n soul_n and_o i_o many_o time_n tell_v he_o and_o the_o rest_n that_o i_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v like_a to_o be_v a_o great_a wrong_n to_o we_o and_o a_o great_a to_o themselves_o and_o the_o kingdom_n that_o they_o mistake_o imagine_v our_o power_n to_o be_v great_a with_o the_o people_n than_o it_o be_v and_o that_o they_o think_v we_o can_v reduce_v they_o at_o our_o pleasure_n to_o conformity_n when_o it_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n and_o that_o they_o imagine_v that_o the_o godly_a people_n who_o dissent_n from_o they_o do_v pin_n their_o religion_n so_o absolute_o on_o our_o sleeve_n and_o take_v up_o all_o their_o opinion_n on_o trust_n from_o we_o whereas_o i_o assure_v he_o that_o he_o will_v find_v by_o experience_n that_o so_o many_o of_o they_o know_v why_o they_o hold_v what_o they_o hold_v and_o do_v it_o so_o pure_o for_o conscience_n sake_n that_o if_o all_o we_o shall_v turn_v and_o set_v against_o they_o there_o will_v so_o many_o thousand_o continue_v in_o their_o opinion_n as_o i_o will_v not_o be_v a_o persecutor_n of_o or_o excommunicate_v for_o more_o than_o ever_o their_o lordship_n will_v get_v by_o it_o but_o the_o bishop_n express_v more_o confidence_n still_o that_o i_o can_v reclaim_v they_o myself_o if_o i_o be_v but_o willing_a and_o that_o they_o only_o follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o their_o teacher_n i_o entreat_v he_o again_o to_o tell_v i_o why_o then_o they_o do_v not_o follow_v my_o opinion_n which_o he_o himself_o say_v i_o have_v publish_v in_o print_n hereupon_o dr._n pierce_n will_v need_n love_o desire_v that_o he_o and_o i_o may_v but_o go_v about_o the_o country_n and_o preach_v people_n to_o conformity_n and_o he_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o they_o will_v quick_o be_v reduce_v i_o tell_v he_o that_o for_o his_o part_n i_o know_v not_o how_o powerful_a his_o preach_n may_v be_v but_o i_o can_v expect_v no_o such_o success_n of_o i_o and_o i_o marvel_v why_o he_o have_v not_o recover_v all_o the_o country_n before_o this_o day_n have_v have_v so_o many_o year_n time_n to_o have_v go_v about_o and_o preach_v they_o to_o conformity_n if_o he_o will_v have_v use_v it_o he_o answer_v that_o he_o have_v recover_v all_o his_o own_o parish_n i_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o he_o have_v do_v so_o by_o all_o other_o there_o will_v have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o all_o this_o trouble_v but_o i_o often_o tell_v the_o bishop_n and_o he_o that_o they_o know_v that_o though_o i_o take_v not_o kneel_v to_o be_v unlawful_a yet_o i_o take_v their_o subscription_n and_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n and_o other_o thing_n to_o be_v unlawful_a and_o i_o perceive_v that_o they_o intend_v no_o abatement_n and_o consequent_o that_o they_o intend_v the_o silence_v of_o i_o and_o all_o that_o be_v of_o my_o mind_n for_o all_o their_o commendation_n of_o my_o write_n on_o that_o subject_a and_o i_o ask_v they_o then_o how_o i_o can_v go_v about_o to_o preach_v for_o they_o when_o they_o have_v first_o silence_v i_o or_o if_o they_o will_v be_v so_o favourable_a to_o forbear_v i_o till_o i_o have_v do_v preach_v for_o their_o ceremony_n it_o be_v but_o a_o odd_a kind_n of_o motion_n for_o they_o to_o make_v come_v preach_v for_o our_o ceremony_n so_o long_o and_o then_o you_o shall_v never_o preach_v more_o and_o a_o odd_a employment_n for_o i_o to_o undertake_v to_o go_v about_o to_o persuade_v people_n to_o obey_v they_o in_o a_o ceremony_n or_o two_o that_o be_v intend_v when_o that_o be_v do_v to_o forbid_v i_o and_o other_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o the_o people_n to_o enjoy_v their_o peace_n upon_o other_o account_n and_o no_o doubt_n to_o call_v we_o schismatic_n when_o they_o do_v it_o this_o speech_n they_o be_v offend_v at_o and_o say_v that_o i_o seek_v to_o make_v they_o odious_a by_o represent_v they_o as_o cruel_a and_o persecutor_n as_o if_o they_o intend_v to_o silence_n and_o cast_v out_o so_o many_o and_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a matter_n of_o offence_n against_o i_o that_o i_o foreknow_v and_o foretell_v they_o what_o they_o be_v about_o to_o do_v they_o say_v that_o this_o be_v but_o to_o stir_v up_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o people_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o disaffect_v the_o government_n by_o talk_v of_o silence_v we_o and_o cast_v out_o the_o people_n from_o communion_n i_o tell_v they_o that_o either_o they_o do_v intend_v such_o a_o course_n or_o not_o if_o they_o do_v why_o shall_v they_o think_v we_o criminal_a for_o know_v it_o if_o not_o what_o need_n have_v we_o of_o all_o these_o dispute_n with_o they_o which_o be_v only_o to_o persuade_v they_o not_o to_o cast_v out_o the_o minister_n and_o the_o people_n on_o these_o account_n and_o it_o be_v but_o a_o few_o week_n after_o this_o that_o bishop_n morley_n himself_o do_v silence_v i_o forbid_v i_o to_o preach_v in_o his_o diocese_n who_o now_o take_v it_o so_o heinous_o that_o i_o do_v foretell_v it_o yet_o because_o the_o hearer_n know_v not_o what_o will_v be_v their_o party_n justify_v they_o and_o concur_v in_o censure_v i_o as_o uncharitable_a for_o speak_v to_o hardly_o of_o they_o and_o this_o make_v i_o remember_v that_o thus_o i_o have_v former_o be_v blame_v by_o all_o who_o miscarriage_n i_o foretell_v when_o i_o tell_v many_o both_o of_o the_o parliament_n and_o country_n what_o the_o army_n do_v intend_v to_o do_v against_o they_o and_z many_z other_o more_z particular_o foretell_v it_o the_o army_n be_v angry_a with_o they_o and_z i_o and_o accuse_v we_o of_o make_v they_o odious_a by_o our_o slander_n and_o cast_v out_o many_o member_n of_o the_o parliament_n on_o that_o pretence_n and_o yet_o within_o a_o few_o week_n they_o do_v the_o very_a thing_n that_o we_o foretell_v so_o unanimous_a be_v all_o man_n that_o have_v ill_a design_n in_o go_v the_o same_o way_n to_o their_o accomplishment_n and_o so_o dangerous_a be_v it_o to_o foreknow_v what_o cruel_a
as_o he_o acquain_v with_o it_o it_o be_v but_o the_o answer_n of_o his_o desire_n and_o not_o a_o employment_n which_o i_o seek_v for_o so_o it_o must_v be_v remember_v 1._o that_o i_o have_v purposely_o avoid_v the_o meddle_v with_o the_o particular_a error_n of_o the_o romanist_n religion_n 2._o that_o i_o speak_v not_o a_o word_n against_o any_o christian_a love_n to_o papist_n or_o amicable_a correspondence_n with_o they_o as_o our_o neighbour_n much_o less_o be_o i_o pass_v any_o sentence_n on_o their_o soul_n or_o countenance_v those_o who_o run_v from_o they_o into_o any_o contrary_a extreme_a but_o a_o husband_n and_o a_o bosom_n friend_n be_v relation_n which_o require_v such_o a_o special_a suitableness_n as_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o all_o who_o we_o must_v love_v 3._o and_o what_o i_o say_v of_o the_o papist_n i_o say_v also_o of_o any_o debauch_a ungodly_a protestant_n for_o it_o be_v not_o name_n and_o party_n that_o make_v man_n good_a or_o save_v their_o soul_n a_o papist_n who_o be_v holy_a heavenly_a of_o a_o upright_a mortify_a life_n and_o not_o of_o a_o bloody_a or_o uncharitable_a mind_n to_o those_o that_o differ_v from_o he_o be_v in_o a_o far_o happy_a state_n as_o to_o himself_o though_o i_o think_v that_o the_o heart_n and_o life_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o other_o do_v make_v they_o both_o unsuitable_a to_o such_o a_o lady_n as_o the_o case_n describe_v and_o though_o god_n may_v possible_o convert_v and_o make_v suitable_a and_o do_v wonder_n hereafter_o yet_o it_o be_v thing_n likely_a and_o not_o thing_n only_o possible_a which_o reason_n must_v expect_v i_o must_v say_v that_o the_o consequent_n of_o such_o a_o unsuitable_a match_n be_v like_a to_o be_v bitter_a to_o she_o than_o one_o that_o be_v indifferent_a and_o regardless_o of_o the_o concernment_n of_o a_o soul_n can_v understand_v 4._o change_v but_o the_o table_n and_o put_v the_o case_n to_o a_o judicious_a papist_n and_o he_o will_v resolve_v it_o as_o i_o have_v do_v and_o tell_v you_o that_o a_o dispensation_n may_v be_v give_v but_o in_o such_o case_n 5._o if_o the_o case_n have_v be_v whether_o such_o a_o lady_n may_v give_v all_o her_o estate_n to_o a_o papist_n without_o her_o person_n i_o shall_v not_o think_v she_o have_v half_o so_o much_o reason_n to_o be_v willing_a ri._n baxter_n action_n july_n 21._o 1665._o §_o 445._o and_o now_o after_o all_o the_o breach_n on_o the_o church_n the_o ejection_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o impenitency_n under_o all_o war_n and_o plague_n and_o danger_n of_o famine_n begin_v all_o at_o once_o on_o we_o war_n with_o the_o hollander_n which_o yet_o continue_v and_o the_o dry_a winter_n spring_n and_o summer_n that_o ever_o man_n alive_a know_v or_o our_o forefather_n mention_v of_o late_a age_n so_o that_o the_o ground_n be_v burn_v like_o the_o highway_n where_o the_o cattle_n shall_v have_v feed_v the_o meadow_n ground_n where_o i_o live_v bare_a but_o four_o load_v of_o hay_n bill_n which_o before_o bear_v forty_o the_o plague_n have_v seize_v on_o the_o famous_a and_o most_o excellent_a city_n of_o christendom_n and_o at_o this_o time_n 8000_o and_o near_o 300_o die_n of_o all_o disease_n in_o a_o week_n it_o have_v scatter_v and_o consume_v the_o inhabitant_n multitude_n be_v dead_a and_o flee_v the_o calamity_n and_o cry_n of_o the_o disease_a and_o impoverish_v be_v not_o to_o be_v conceive_v by_o those_o that_o be_v absent_a from_o they_o every_o man_n be_v a_o terror_n to_o his_o neighbour_n and_o himself_o for_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n be_v a_o terror_n to_o we_o all_o o_o how_o be_v london_n the_o place_n which_o god_n have_v honour_v with_o his_o gospel_n above_o all_o place_n of_o the_o earth_n lay_v low_o in_o horror_n and_o waste_v almost_o to_o desolation_n by_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n who_o england_n have_v contemn_v and_o a_o god-hating_a generation_n be_v consume_v in_o their_o sin_n and_o the_o righteous_a be_v also_o take_v away_o as_o from_o great_a evil_n yet_o to_o come_v strange_a comet_n which_o fill_v the_o thought_n and_o write_n of_o astronomer_n do_v in_o the_o winter_n and_o spring_n a_o long_a time_n appear_v before_o these_o calamity_n yet_o under_o all_o these_o desolation_n the_o wicked_a be_v harden_v and_o cast_v all_o on_o the_o fanatic_n and_o the_o true_a divide_n fanatic_n and_o sectary_n be_v not_o yet_o humble_v for_o former_a miscarriage_n but_o cast_v all_o on_o the_o prelate_n and_o imposer_n and_o the_o ignorant_a vulgar_a be_v stupid_a and_o know_v not_o what_o use_n to_o make_v of_o any_o thing_n they_o feel_v but_o thousand_o of_o the_o sober_a prudent_a faithful_a servant_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v mourning_n in_o secret_a and_o wait_v for_o his_o salvation_n in_o humility_n and_o hope_n they_o be_v stay_n themselves_o on_o god_n and_o expect_v what_o he_o will_v do_v with_o they_o from_o london_n it_o be_v spread_v through_o many_o county_n especial_o next_o london_n where_o few_o place_n especial_o corporation_n be_v free_a which_o make_v i_o oft_o groan_v and_o wish_v that_o london_n and_o alice_n the_o corporation_n of_o england_n will_v review_n the_o corporation_n act_n and_o their_o own_o act_n and_o speedy_o repent_v leave_v most_o of_o my_o family_n at_o action_n compass_v about_o with_o the_o plague_n at_o the_o write_n of_o this_o through_o the_o mercy_n of_o my_o dear_a god_n and_o father_n in_o christ_n i_o be_o hitherto_o in_o safety_n and_o comfort_n in_o the_o house_n of_o my_o dear_o belove_a and_o honour_a friend_n mr._n richard_n hampden_n of_o hampden_n in_o buck_v hamshire_n the_o true_a heir_n of_o his_o famous_a father_n sincerity_n piety_n and_o devotedness_n to_o god_n who_o person_n and_o family_n the_o lord_n preserve_v and_o honour_v they_o that_o honour_n he_o and_o be_v their_o everlasting_a rest_n and_o portion_n hampden_n septemb_n 28._o 1665._o the_o life_n of_o the_o reverend_n mr._n richard_n baxter_n the_o three_o part._n novemb_n 16._o 1670._o i_o begin_v to_o add_v the_o memorial_n follow_v §_o 1._o sing_v god_n have_v be_v please_v to_o add_v these_o few_o year_n more_o to_o my_o pilgrimage_n i_o will_v add_v some_o account_n of_o his_o providence_n towards_o i_o and_o his_o people_n in_o this_o land_n in_o these_o additional_a year_n when_o i_o end_v my_o last_o narrative_a the_o dreadful_a plague_n be_v lay_v waste_n especial_o the_o city_n of_o london_n and_o thence_o spread_v into_o the_o neighbour_a part_n and_o into_o many_o distant_a city_n and_o corporation_n of_o the_o land_n yet_o do_v we_o hear_v of_o no_o public_a repentance_n profess_v by_o any_o one_o city_n or_o corporation_n for_o that_o profession_n by_o which_o they_o be_v all_o at_o that_o time_n even_o constitute_v whilst_o that_o all_o that_o have_v any_o office_n or_o trust_v therein_o declare_v that_o there_o be_v no_o obligation_n from_o the_o vow_n call_v the_o solemn_a league_n and_o covenant_n on_o any_o person_n no_o not_o from_o their_o vow_n against_o popery_n schism_n or_o profaneness_n nor_o their_o vow_n to_o defend_v the_o king_n nor_o their_o promise_n of_o repentance_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o who_o can_v but_o fear_v that_o such_o a_o universal_a sin_n must_v be_v yet_o more_o sharp_o punish_v when_o such_o a_o scourge_n as_o this_o have_v no_o better_a effect_n §_o 2._o the_o number_n that_o die_v in_o london_n beside_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o land_n be_v about_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o reckon_v the_o quaker_n and_o other_o that_o be_v never_o put_v in_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n with_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o bill_n §_o 3._o the_o rich_a sort_n remove_v out_o of_o the_o city_n the_o great_a ●low_n fall_v on_o the_o poor_a at_o the_o first_o so_o few_o of_o the_o religious_a sort_n be_v take_v away_o that_o according_a to_o the_o mode_n of_o too_o many_o such_o 〈◊〉_d begin_v to_o be_v puff_v up_o and_o boast_v of_o the_o great_a difference_n which_o god_n do_v make●_n but_o quick_o after_o they_o all_o fall_v alike_o yet_o not_o many_o pious_a minister_n be_v take_v away_o i_o remember_v but_o three_o who_o be_v all_o of_o my_o own_o acquaintance_n 1._o mr._n grunman_n a_o german_a a_o very_a humble_a holy_a able_a minister_n but_o be_v a_o silence_v nonconformist_a be_v so_o poor_a that_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o remove_v his_o family_n 2._o mr._n cross_n a_o worthy_a minister_n plague_n that_o have_v long_o ago_o live_v with_o the_o famous_a religious_a lady_n scudamore_n and_o be_v silence_v be_v entertain_v by_o richard_n hambden_n esq_n in_o his_o house_n at_o london_n and_o fly_v from_o the_o plague_n into_o the_o country_n die_v with_o his_o wife_n and_o some_o child_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o come_v thither_o in_o the_o house_n of_o that_o
what_o shall_v one_o or_o two_o or_o three_o in_o a_o parish_n do_v who_o usual_o be_v as_o many_o in_o most_o or_o many_o parish_n as_o be_v fit_a for_o communion_n etc._n etc._n man_n first_o estrange_v themselves_o from_o the_o poor_a people_n who_o they_o shall_v teach_v with_o tenderness_n and_o diligence_n and_o then_o they_o think_v their_o ignorance_n of_o the_o people_n ground_n enough_o to_o judge_v they_o ignorant_a and_o talk_v of_o one_o or_o two_o in_o a_o parish_n but_o christ_n will_v find_v many_o more_o i_o be_o past_a doubt_n even_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a church_n than_o these_o man_n can_v do_v of_o the_o visible_a which_o be_v much_o large_a and_o you_o can_v say_v if_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n of_o success_n that_o it_o be_v only_o from_o the_o difference_n of_o person_n and_o not_o of_o the_o several_a way_n for_o here_o where_o i_o live_v be_v two_o of_o the_o worthy_a person_n of_o your_o way_n mr._n nye_n and_o mr._n elford_n who_o ability_n and_o piety_n be_v beyond_o all_o question_n and_o so_o be_v their_o great_a advantage_n then_o but_o your_o way_n be_v your_o disadvantage_n and_o christ_n friend_n shall_v suspect_v that_o way_n of_o honour_v godliness_n which_o tend_v to_o diminish_v it_o or_o suppress_v it_o i_o tell_v you_o some_o few_o of_o the_o thing_n offensive_a to_o your_o brethren_n that_o you_o may_v see_v wherein_o our_o agreement_n must_v give_v satisfaction_n the_o rest_n i_o now_o omit_v i_o have_v think_v to_o have_v say_v more_o of_o the_o reason_n why_o you_o shall_v hearty_o promote_v it_o but_o i_o will_v now_o say_v but_o these_o two_o thing_n 1._o that_o he_o that_o can_v consider_v what_o the_o effect_n of_o our_o division_n have_v be_v upon_o church_n and_o state_n and_o the_o life_n of_o some_o and_o the_o soul_n of_o thousand_o both_o of_o the_o open_o ungodly_a and_o professor_n and_o that_o know_v how_o great_a a_o reproach_n they_o be_v now_o to_o our_o profession_n and_o harden_v of_o the_o wicked_a and_o hindrance_n to_o that_o good_a even_o of_o the_o best_a and_o yet_o do_v not_o thirst_n to_o see_v they_o heal_v have_v small_a sense_n of_o the_o interest_n of_o christ_n and_o soul_n 2._o that_o he_o that_o consider_v what_o it_o be_v to_o continue_v such_o division_n unhealed_a for_o 20_o year_n under_o such_o warning_n and_o call_n to_o unity_n and_o to_o do_v what_o we_o have_v do_v against_o ourselves_o and_o other_o after_o such_o smart_n and_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n to_o the_o last_o be_v most_o dreadful_o impenitent_a if_o repentance_n do_v not_o now_o make_v he_o zealous_a for_o a_o cure_n and_o in_o particular_a if_o you_o and_o mr._n nye_n and_o i_o be_v not_o extraordinary_a zealous_a for_o this_o work_n there_o be_v scarce_o three_o man_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o world_n that_o will_v be_v more_o heinous_o guilty_a and_o without_o excuse_n i_o need_v not_o tell_v you_o why_o and_o true_o if_o we_o have_v zeal_n and_o yet_o not_o skill_n for_o such_o a_o cure_n when_o all_o say_v that_o the_o people_n be_v willing_a than_o the_o pastor_n it_o will_v be_v a_o shame_n for_o we_o to_o cry_v out_o on_o they_o that_o silence_n we_o as_o if_o such_o shepherd_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o flock_n that_o have_v skill_n to_o wound_n and_o none_o to_o cure_n therefore_o as_o i_o be_o hearty_o glad_a of_o your_o forwardness_n and_o willingness_n to_o this_o work_n pardon_v i_o for_o tell_v you_o i_o will_v judge_v of_o it_o by_o the_o effect_n i_o address_v myself_o to_o you_o alone_o because_o i_o know_v that_o understanding_n and_o experience_n be_v great_a assistant_n to_o lead_v on_o charity_n in_o this_o work_n and_o there_o be_v no_o deal_n with_o they_o that_o understand_v not_o the_o case_n and_o i_o will_v hope_v that_o the_o effect_n will_v show_v that_o no_o humour_n of_o other_o man_n of_o narrow_a mind_n and_o interest_n and_o injudicious_a passion_n shall_v preval_fw-fr with_o you_o against_o so_o great_a a_o work_n of_o repentance_n and_o love_n to_o god_n and_o godliness_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n again_o pardon_v this_o freedom_n use_v by_o your_o much_o hounour_v and_o unworthy_a brother_n rich._n baxter_n §_o 144._o after_o this_o i_o wait_v on_o he_o at_o london_n again_o and_o he_o come_v once_o to_o i_o to_o my_o lodging_n when_o i_o be_v in_o town_n near_o he_o and_o he_o tell_v i_o that_o he_o receive_v my_o chide_a letter_n and_o perceive_v that_o i_o suspect_v his_o reality_n in_o the_o business_n but_o he_o be_v so_o hearty_a in_o it_o that_o i_o shall_v see_v that_o he_o real_o mean_v as_o he_o speak_v conclude_v in_o these_o word_n you_o shall_v see_v it_o and_o my_o practice_n shall_v reproach_v your_o diffidence_n i_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o i_o foresee_v his_o temptation_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o help_v he_o by_o premonition_n to_o overcome_v they_o i_o mean_v not_o that_o as_o a_o accusation_n but_o i_o thank_v he_o for_o his_o promise_n to_o reproach_v my_o diffidence_n by_o his_o practice_n and_o such_o a_o event_n will_v be_v his_o honour_n and_o let_v it_o reproach_v i_o and_o spare_v not_o so_o be_v it_o the_o work_n be_v do_v but_o again_o i_o desire_v that_o no_o one_o living_n may_v know_v of_o it_o till_o he_o and_o i_o have_v finish_v our_o attempt_n and_o thus_o i_o wait_v for_o his_o animadversion_n §_o 145._o about_o a_o month_n after_o i_o go_v to_o he_o again_o and_o he_o have_v do_v nothing_o but_o be_v still_o hearty_a for_o the_o work_n and_o to_o be_v short_a i_o thus_o wait_v on_o he_o time_n after_o time_n till_o my_o paper_n have_v be_v near_o a_o year_n and_o quarter_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o then_o i_o desire_v he_o to_o return_v they_o to_o i_o which_o he_o do_v with_o these_o word_n i_o be_o still_o a_o wellwisher_a to_o those_o mathematics_n without_o any_o other_o word_n about_o they_o or_o ever_o give_v i_o any_o more_o exception_n against_o they_o and_o this_o be_v the_o issue_n of_o my_o three_o attempt_n for_o union_n with_o the_o independent_o §_o 146._o have_v long_o upon_o the_o suspension_n of_o my_o aphorism_n be_v purpose_v to_o draw_v up_o a_o method_n of_o theology_n i_o now_o begin_v it_o i_o never_o yet_o see_v a_o scheme_n or_o method_n of_o physics_n or_o theology_n which_o give_v any_o satisfaction_n to_o my_o reason_n though_o many_o have_v attempt_v to_o exercise_v more_o accurateness_n in_o distribution_n than_o all_o other_o that_o go_v before_o they_o especial_o dud'ey_n fenner_n tzegedine_n sobnius_fw-la gomarus_n amesius_n treleatius_fw-la wollebius_n etc._n etc._n and_o our_o present_a busie-boaster_n dr._n nich._n gibbon_n in_o his_o scheme_n yet_o i_o can_v never_o yet_o see_v any_o who_o confusion_n or_o great_a defect_n i_o can_v not_o easy_o discover_v but_o not_o so_o easy_o amend_v i_o have_v be_v twenty_o six_o year_n convince_v that_o dichotomize_v will_v not_o do_v it_o but_o that_o the_o divine_a trinity_n in_o unity_n have_v express_v itself_o in_o the_o whole_a frame_n of_o nature_n and_o morality_n and_o i_o have_v so_o long_o be_v think_v of_o a_o true_a method_n and_o making-some_a small_a attempt_n but_o i_o find_v myself_o insufficient_a for_o it_o and_o so_o continue_v only_o think_v of_o it_o and_o study_v it_o all_o these_o year_n campanella_n i_o see_v have_v make_v the_o fair_a attempt_n that_o ever_o i_o see_v make_v in_o the_o principle_n of_o nature_n and_o commenius_n after_o he_o but_o yet_o as_o i_o believe_v he_o quite_o miss_v it_o in_o his_o first_o operative_a principle_n of_o heat_n and_o cold_a mistake_v the_o nature_n of_o cold_a and_o darkness_n so_o he_o run_v his_o three_o principle_n which_o he_o call_v primality_n into_o many_o subsequent_a notion_n which_o be_v not_o provable_a or_o coherent_a have_v long_o read_v his_o physics_n metaphysic_n de_fw-fr sensu_fw-la rerum_fw-la and_o atheismus_fw-la triumphatus_n i_o find_v he_o mention_v his_o theology_n which_o put_v i_o in_o hope_n that_o he_o have_v there_o also_o make_v some_o attempt_n but_o i_o can_v never_o hear_v of_o any_o one_o that_o have_v see_v any_o such_o book_n of_o he_o at_o last_o mr._n geo._n lawson_n theopolitica_fw-la come_v out_o which_o reduce_v theology_n to_o a_o method_n more_o political_a and_o right_a in_o the_o main_a than_o any_o that_o i_o have_v see_v before_o he_o but_o he_o have_v not_o hit_v on_o the_o true_a method_n of_o the_o vestigia_fw-la trinitatis_fw-la and_o some_o long_a debate_n by_o write_v between_o he_o and_o i_o which_o have_v go_v before_o about_o 7_o year_n have_v engage_v he_o to_o make_v good_a his_o first_o paper_n in_o those_o mistake_n about_o the_o office_n of_o faith_n in_o justification_n as_o justify_v only_o as_o christ_n propitiation_n as_o the_o object_n of_o
lawful_a and_o what_o if_o we_o have_v do_v so_o be_v the_o liturgy_n all_o that_o nonconformist_n stick_v at_o be_v the_o canonical_a subscription_n and_o oath_n of_o obedience_n and_o re-ordination_a etc._n etc._n no_o more_o and_o do_v not_o the_o nation_n know_v that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o old_a conformsty_n which_o be_v then_o question_v and_o that_o the_o new_a be_v not_o in_o be_v and_o that_o the_o act_n of_o uniformity_n be_v since_o make_v wherein_o beside_o re-ordination_a be_v the_o new_a declaration_n and_o new_a subscription_n and_o since_o that_o the_o new_a oxford_n oath_n such_o impudence_n it_o be_v that_o assault_v and_o render_v we_o odious_a to_o the_o ignorant_a contrary_a to_o public_a notoriety_n of_o fact_n yet_o visible_a in_o print_n to_o all_o the_o world_n §_o 234._o another_o at_o that_o time_n write_v that_o i_o have_v write_v that_o the_o supreme_a power_n may_v be_v resist_v for_o religion_n and_o another_o a_o papist_n write_v for_o toleration_n that_o i_o write_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o of_o the_o peer_n may_v warrant_v subject_n to_o take_v up_o arm_n against_o the_o king_n thing_n that_o i_o never_o write_v or_o think_v or_o any_o thing_n like_o they_o but_o have_v write_v very_o much_o to_o the_o contrary_a but_o it_o be_v our_o lot_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o such_o man_n as_o have_v banish_v all_o modesty_n in_o their_o calumny_n §_o 235._o about_o the_o begin_n of_o may_n in_o my_o walk_n in_o the_o field_n i_o meet_v with_o dr._n gunning_n now_o bishop_n of_o chichester_n with_o who_o i_o have_v the_o contention_n and_o fierce_a opposition_n to_o all_o the_o motion_n of_o peace_n at_o the_o savoy_n and_o at_o his_o invitation_n go_v after_o to_o his_o lodging_n to_o pursue_v our_o begin_a discourse_n which_o he_o vehement_o profess_v that_o he_o be_v sure_a that_o it_o be_v not_o conscience_n that_o keep_v we_o from_o conformity_n but_o mere_o to_o keep_v up_o our_o reputation_n with_o the_o people_n and_o we_o desire_v alteration_n for_o no_o other_o end_n and_o that_o we_o lose_v nothing_o by_o our_o nonconformity_n but_o be_v feed_v as_o full_a and_o live_v as_o much_o to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o flesh_n in_o plenty_n as_o the_o conformist_n do_v and_o let_v i_o know_v what_o odious_a thought_n he_o have_v of_o his_o poor_a brethren_n upon_o ground_n so_o notorious_o false_a that_o i_o have_v think_v few_o man_n that_o live_v in_o england_n can_v have_v be_v so_o ignorant_a of_o such_o matter_n of_o fact_n but_o alas_o what_o be_v there_o so_o false_a and_o odious_a which_o exasperate_v factious_a malicious_a mind_n will_v not_o believe_v and_o say_v of_o other_o and_o what_o evidence_n so_o notorious_a which_o they_o will_v not_o outface_v i_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o stranger_n to_o the_o man_n he_o talk_v of_o that_o those_o of_o my_o acquaintance_n who_o he_o confess_v to_o be_v far_o more_o than_o of_o his_o be_v general_o the_o most_o conscionable_a man_n that_o i_o can_v 〈◊〉_d on_o earth_n that_o he_o may_v easy_o know_v reputation_n can_v not_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o make_v they_o suffer_v so_o much_o affliction_n because_o 1._o many_o of_o they_o be_v young_a man_n not_o pre-engaged_n in_o point_n of_o reputation_n to_o any_o side_n 2._o he_o know_v that_o we_o lose_v by_o our_o nonconformity_n that_o worldly_a honour_n which_o we_o be_v as_o capable_a of_o as_o he_o and_o other_o we_o do_v not_o so_o vilify_v the_o king_n parliament_z lord_n bishop_n knight_n and_o gentry_n who_o be_v most_o against_o we_o as_o to_o think_v it_o a_o piece_n of_o worldly_a honour_n to_o be_v vilify_v by_o they_o and_o call_v rogue_n and_o send_v to_o the_o common_a goal_n among_o rogue_n and_o brand_v to_o the_o world_n as_o we_o be_v in_o the_o oxford_n act_n of_o confinement_n and_o banish_v five_o mile_n from_o city_n and_o corporation_n our_o conscience_n will_v not_o allow_v we_o to_o say_v that_o he_o and_o such_o 〈◊〉_d he_o who_o be_v clergy-lord_n and_o parliament-baron_n do_v conform_v out_o of_o pride_n or_o love_n of_o reputation_n and_o which_o be_v the_o like_a to_o a_o reasonable_a conjecture_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v move_v by_o pride_n who_o choose_v the_o way_n of_o worldly_a wealth_n and_o domination_n and_o honour_n give_v law_n to_o his_o brethren_n and_o vilify_a they_o and_o trample_v on_o they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n as_o on_o a_o company_n of_o contemn_a scorn_a wretch_n or_o they_o that_o choose_v the_o way_n of_o this_o contempt_n and_o scorn_n with_o poverty_n and_o corporal_a distress_n who_o honour_n be_v it_o that_o such_o man_n seek_v you_o account_v their_o follower_n the_o refuse_n of_o the_o world_n as_o you_o do_v they_o and_o if_o they_o themselves_o think_v better_a of_o they_o yet_o they_o will_v know_v that_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o mean_a sort_n and_o that_o poor_a man_n have_v little_a to_o spare_v for_o other_o and_o we_o be_v not_o so_o sordid_o disingenuous_a as_o not_o to_o be_v sensible_a that_o to_o be_v behold_v to_o poor_a man_n that_o want_v themselves_o for_o our_o daily_a bread_n be_v not_o the_o work_n of_o pride_n but_o put_v our_o humilty_n to_o it_o to_o the_o utmost_a it_o be_v foolish_a pride_n which_o choose_v the_o hatred_n and_o scorn_n of_o the_o great_a man_n of_o the_o world_n instead_o of_o dignity_n and_o honour_n and_o choose_v to_o suffer_v scorn_n and_o imprisonment_n among_o poor_a man_n to_o who_o we_o must_v be_v behold_v for_o a_o beggarly_a sustenance_n and_o as_o for_o the_o plenty_n and_o fullness_n which_o they_o upbraid_v we_o with_o it_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o immodest_a and_o unreasonable_a which_o some_o man_n malice_n will_v not_o say_v do_v they_o not_o know_v into_o what_o poverty_n london_n be_v bring_v by_o the_o late_a fire_n and_o want_v of_o trade_n and_o what_o complaint_n do_v fill_v all_o the_o land_n and_o how_o close-hunded_n almost_o all_o man_n be_v that_o be_v themselves_o in_o want_n and_o minister_n be_v not_o so_o impudent_a as_o to_o turn_v beggar_n without_o shame_n i_o have_v but_o a_o few_o day_n before_o have_v letter_n of_o a_o worthy_a minister_n who_o with_o his_o wife_n and_o six_o child_n have_v many_o year_n have_v seldom_o other_o food_n than_o brown_a rye_n bread_n and_o water_n and_o be_v then_o turn_v out_o of_o his_o house_n and_o have_v none_o to_o go_v to_o and_o of_o another_o that_o be_v fain_o to_o spin_v for_o his_o live_n and_o abundance_n i_o know_v that_o have_v family_n and_o nothing_o or_o next_o to_o nothing_o of_o their_o own_o and_o live_v in_o exceed_a want_n upon_o the_o poor_a drop_n of_o charity_n which_o they_o stoop_v to_o receive_v from_o a_o few_o mean_a people_n and_o if_o there_o be_v here_o and_o there_o a_o rich_a man_n that_o be_v charitable_a he_o have_v so_o many_o to_o relieve_v that_o each_o one_o can_v have_v but_o a_o small_a share_n indeed_o about_o a_o dozen_o or_o twenty_o minister_n about_o london_n who_o stick_v to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o devour_a plague_n or_o in_o other_o time_n of_o distress_n and_o fear_v no_o suffering_n have_v so_o many_o people_n adhere_v to_o they_o as_o keep_v they_o from_o beggary_n or_o great_a want_n and_o you_o judge_v of_o all_o the_o rest_n by_o these_o when_o almost_o all_o the_o rest_n through_o england_n who_o have_v not_o something_o of_o their_o own_o to_o live_v upon_o do_v suffer_v so_o much_o as_o their_o scorner_n will_v scarce_o believe_v it_o be_v no_o easy_a thing_n to_o have_v the_o landlord_n call_v for_o rent_n and_o the_o baker_n the_o brewer_n the_o buther_n the_o tailor_n the_o draper_n the_o shoemaker_n and_o many_o other_o call_v for_o money_n and_o wife_n and_o child_n call_v for_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o clothes_n and_o a_o minister_n to_o have_v no_o answer_n for_o they_o but_o i_o have_v none_o and_o the_o bishop_n have_v the_o less_o modesty_n in_o stand_v confident_o to_o my_o face_n of_o his_o certainty_n of_o our_o lose_v nothing_o by_o our_o nonconformity_n when_o he_o himself_o know_v that_o i_o be_v offer_v a_o bishopric_n in_o 1660._o and_o he_o get_v not_o his_o bishopric_n for_o all_o his_o extraordinary_a way_n of_o merit_n till_o about_o 1671_o or_o 1672_o and_o i_o have_v not_o a_o groat_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a maintenance_n since_o the_o king_n come_v in_o nor_o to_o my_o best_a remembrance_n ever_o receive_v more_o than_o the_o fon●_n pound_v even_o now_o mention_v as_o a_o salary_n for_o preach_v these_o eleven_o year_n nor_o any_o way_n for_o preach_v the_o sum_n of_o eight_o pound_n in_o all_o those_o year_n yea_o on_o this_o occasion_n i_o will_v not_o think_v it_o vain_a to_o say_v that_o all_o that_o i_o remember_v that_o ever_o i_o
the_o parish_n church_n through_o the_o greatness_n of_o some_o parish_n the_o lowness_n of_o the_o minister_n voice_n and_o the_o paucity_n of_o church_n since_o the_o burn_a of_o the_o city_n and_o they_o confess_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v ordinary_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o teach_v and_o hear_v necessary_a to_o knowledge_n and_o that_o to_o leave_v the_o people_n untaught_a especial_o where_o so_o many_o be_v speak_v for_o atheism_n beastiality_n and_o infidelity_n be_v to_o give_v they_o up_o to_o damnation_n but_o yet_o they_o say_v that_o to_o do_v so_o be_v my_o duty_n because_o the_o bishop_n be_v against_o my_o preach_a and_o i_o ought_v to_o rest_v satisfy_v that_o it_o be_v the_o bishop_n and_o not_o not_o i_o that_o must_v answer_v for_o their_o damnation_n alas_o poor_a soul_n must_v they_o needs_o be_v damn_v by_o thousand_o without_o make_v any_o question_n of_o it_o as_o if_o all_o the_o question_n be_v who_o shall_v answer_v for_o it_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v such_o cruel_a man_n i_o undertake_v to_o prove_v to_o they_o to_o they_o 1._o that_o our_o english_a species_n of_o dio●●san_n 〈◊〉_d and_o lay_v choncellour_n power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v contrary_a to_o god_n word_n and_o destructive_a of_o true_a discipline_n and_o of_o the_o church_n form_n and_o office_n institute_v by_o christ._n 2._o that_o be_v the_o office_n lawful_a the_o man_n have_v no_o true_a call_n to_o it_o be_v not_o choose_v or_o consent_v to_o by_o the_o clergy_n or_o the_o people_n 3._o that_o if_o their_o call_v be_v good_a they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o forbid_v the_o present_n silence_v minister_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n but_o thereby_o they_o serve_v satan_n against_o christ_n and_o man_n salvation_n paul_n himself_o have_v his_o power_n to_o edification_n and_o not_o to_o destruction_n and_o christ_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n give_v his_o minister_n only_o a_o save_a power_n and_o to_o none_o a_o power_n to_o samish_v and_o damn_v the_o people_n soul_n 4._o that_o we_o be_v dedicate_v as_o minister_n to_o the_o sacred_a office_n and_o it_o be_v sacrilege_n in_o ourselves_o or_o other_o to_o alienate_v we_o from_o it_o while_o we_o be_v not_o unfit_a or_o unable_a for_o it_o 5._o that_o we_o be_v charge_v as_o well_o as_o timothy_n before_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o shall_v judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a at_o his_o appear_v that_o we_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o be_v in_o season_n and_o our_o of_o season_n reprove_v rebuke_n exhort_v etc._n etc._n 6._o that_o the_o ancient_a pastor_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n do_v preach_v the_o gospel_n against_o the_o will_n of_o their_o lawful_a prince_n both_o heathen_n and_o ascian_n 7_o that_o the_o bishop_n have_v no_o more_o power_n to_o forbid_v we_o to_o preach_v than_o the_o king_n have_v and_o these_o man_n confess_v that_o minister_n unjust_o silence_v may_v preach_v against_o the_o will_n of_o king_n but_o not_o say_v they_o of_o bishop_n 8._o that_o be_v we_o layman_n we_o may_v teach_v and_o exhort_v as_o layman_n as_o origen_n do_v though_o we_o may_v not_o do_v it_o as_o pastor_n much_o more_o be_v ordain_v the_o minister_n of_o christ._n and_o that_o now_o to_o we_o it_o be_v a_o work_n which_o both_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o our_o office_n or_o vow_n do_v bind_v we_o to_o even_o a_o moral_a duty_n and_o that_o when_o christ_n judge_v man_n for_o not_o feed_v clothe_v visit_v his_o member_n it_o will_v not_o excuse_v we_o to_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n forbid_v we_o that_o if_o king_n or_o bishop_n forbid_v we_o to_o feed_v our_o child_n or_o to_o save_v the_o life_n of_o drown_v or_o famish_v man_n we_o must_v disobey_v they_o as_o be_v against_o a_o great_a command_n of_o god_n love_n and_o the_o work_n of_o love_n be_v the_o great_a indispensable_a duty_n and_o soul_n be_v great_a object_n of_o charity_n than_o body_n 9_o that_o it_o be_v in_o a_o case_n of_o pharifaical_a church_n discipline_n when_o christ_n avoid_v not_o converse_v with_o sinner_n when_o their_o good_a require_v it_o that_o christ_n send_v the_o pharisee_n to_o learn_v what_o this_o mean_v i_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o not_o sacrifice_v and_o at_o two_o several_a time_n repeat_v the_o same_o word_n 10._o that_o order_n be_v for_o the_o thing_n ordered_n and_o its_o end_n and_o a_o power_n of_o order_v preacher_n be_v not_o a_o power_n to_o depose_v necessary_a preach_v and_o famish_v soul_n 11._o and_o i_o show_v they_o that_o i_o myself_o have_v the_o licence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o this_o diocese_n as_o well_o as_o episcopal_a ordination_n and_o that_o my_o licence_n be_v in_o force_n and_o not_o recall_v 12._o and_o that_o i_o have_v the_o king_n licence_n 13._o and_o therefore_o after_o all_o this_o to_o obey_v these_o silencer_n nay_o no_o bishop_n do_v forbid_v i_o otherwise_o than_o as_o his_o vote_n be_v to_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n which_o be_v as_o magistrate_n and_o to_o fulfil_v their_o will_n that_o will_v be_v content_a with_o nothing_o but_o our_o forsake_v of_o poor_a soul_n and_o cease_v to_o preach_v christ_n this_o be_v no_o better_o than_o to_o end_v my_o life_n of_o comfortable_a labour_n in_o obey_v the_o devil_n the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o soul_n which_o god_n forbid_v §_o 272._o yet_o will_v not_o all_o this_o satisfy_v these_o man_n but_o they_o cry_v out_o as_o the_o papist_n schism_n schism_n unless_o we_o will_v cease_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o have_v little_a to_o say_v for_o all_o but_o that_o no_o society_n can_v be_v govern_v if_o the_o ruler_n be_v not_o the_o judge_n yet_o dare_v they_o not_o deny_v but_o a_o judgement_n of_o discern_a duty_n from_o sin_n belong_v to_o all_o subject_n or_o else_o we_o be_v brute_n or_o must_v be_v atheist_n idolater_n blasphemer_n or_o what_o ever_o a_o bishop_n shall_v command_v we_o but_o under_o the_o censure_n of_o these_o unreasonable_a man_n who_o take_v our_o great_a duty_n for_o our_o heinous_a sin_n must_v we_o patient_o serve_v our_o lord_n but_o his_o approbation_n be_v our_o full_a reward_n §_o 273_o on_o july_n 5_o 1674._o at_o our_o meeting_n over_o st._n iamses_n market-house_n god_n vouchsafe_v we_o a_o great_a deliverance_n life_n a_o main_a beam_n before_o weaken_a by_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o people_n so_o crack_v that_o three_o time_n they_o run_v in_o terror_n out_o of_o the_o room_n think_v it_o be_v fall_v but_o remember_v the_o like_a at_o dunstan_n west_n i_o reprove_v their_o fear_n as_o causeless_o but_o the_o next_o day_n take_v up_o the_o board_n we_o find_v that_o two_o rent_n in_o the_o beam_n be_v so_o great_a that_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n of_o providence_n that_o the_o floor_n have_v not_o fall_v and_o the_o roof_n with_o it_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o multitude_n the_o lord_n make_v we_o thankful_a §_o 274_o a_o person_n unknown_a profess_v infidelity_n but_o whether_o a_o infidel_n or_o a_o jagle_a papist_n i_o know_v not_o send_v i_o a_o manuscript_n call_v examen_fw-la 〈◊〉_d charge_v scripture_n with_o immorality_n falsehood_n and_o contradiction_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n and_o with_o seem_a seriousness_n and_o respectfulness_n importune_v i_o to_o answer_v he_o i_o be_v in_o so_o great_a pain_n and_o weakness_n and_o engage_v in_o other_o work_n that_o i_o send_v he_o word_n that_o i_o have_v not_o time_n or_o strength_n for_o so_o long_a a_o work_n he_o select_v about_o a_o dozen_o instance_n and_o desire_v my_o answer_n to_o they_o i_o give_v he_o a_o answer_n to_o they_o and_o to_o some_o of_o his_o general_a accusation_n but_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o rational_a order_n to_o be_v follow_v by_o a_o lover_n of_o truth_n be_v first_o to_o consider_v of_o the_o proof_n bring_v for_o christianity_n before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o objection_n against_o it_o and_o i_o prove_v to_o he_o that_o christianity_n be_v prove_v true_a many_o year_n before_o any_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v and_o that_o so_o it_o may_v be_v still_o prove_v by_o one_o that_o doubt_v of_o some_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o the_o true_a order_n be_v to_o try_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n first_o and_o the_o perfect_a verity_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n afterward_o and_o therefore_o importune_v he_o first_o to_o answer_v my_o book_n call_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o than_o if_o i_o live_v i_o will_v answer_v his_o accusation_n but_o i_o can_v not_o at_o all_o prevail_v with_o he_o but_o he_o still_o insist_v on_o my_o answer_v of_o his_o charge_n and_o half_o a_o year_n or_o more_o after_o he_o send_v i_o a_o reply_n to_o the_o answer_n
his_o conscience_n to_o baptize_v any_o child_n who_o be_v not_o thus_o offer_v to_o god_n by_o one_o of_o the_o parent_n or_o by_o such_o a_o pro_fw-la parent_n as_o take_v the_o child_n for_o his_o own_o and_o undertake_v the_o christian_a education_n be_v it_o also_o enact_v that_o no_o person_n shall_v be_v constrain_v against_o his_o conscience_n to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n or_o of_o the_o surplice_n nor_o any_o minister_n to_o deny_v the_o lord_n supper_n to_o any_o for_o not_o receive_v it_o kneel_v nor_o read_v any_o of_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la for_o lesson_n nor_o to_o punish_v any_o excommunication_n or_o absolution_n against_o his_o conscience_n but_o the_o bishop_n or_o chancellor_n who_o decree_v it_o shall_v cause_v such_o to_o publish_v it_o as_o be_v not_o dissatisfy_v so_o to_o do_v or_o shall_v only_o affix_v it_o on_o the_o church-door_n nor_o shall_v any_o minister_n be_v constrain_v at_o burial_n to_o speak_v only_a word_n import_v the_o salvation_n of_o any_o person_n who_o within_o a_o year_n receive_v not_o the_o sacrament_n of_o communion_n or_o be_v suspend_v from_o it_o according_a to_o the_o rubric_n or_o canon_n and_o satisfy_v not_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o serious_a repentance_n iii_o and_o whereas_o many_o person_n have_v be_v ordain_v as_o presbyter_n by_o parochial_a pastor_n in_o the_o time_n of_o usurpation_n and_o distraction_n have_v occasion_v many_o difficulty_n for_o the_o present_a remedy_n hereof_o be_v it_o enact_v that_o all_o such_o person_n as_o before_o this_o time_n have_v be_v ordain_v as_o presbyter_n by_o parochial_a pastor_n only_o and_o be_v qualify_v for_o that_o office_n as_o the_o law_n require_v shall_v receive_v power_n to_o exercise_v it_o from_o a_o bishop_n by_o a_o write_a instrument_n which_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n be_v hereby_o impower_v and_o require_v to_o grant_v in_o these_o word_n and_o no_o other_o too_o a._n b._n of_o c._n in_o the_o country_n of_o d._n take_v thou_o authority_n to_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o a_o presbyter_n in_o any_o place_n and_o congregation_n in_o the_o king_n dominion_n whereto_o thou_o shall_v be_v lawful_o call_v and_o this_o practice_n suffice_v for_o present_a concord_n no_o one_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o declare_v his_o judgement_n whether_o this_o or_o that_o which_o he_o before_o receive_v shall_v be_v take_v for_o his_o ordination_n nor_o shall_v be_v urge_v to_o speak_v any_o word_n of_o such_o signification_n but_o each_o party_n shall_v be_v leave_v to_o judge_n as_o they_o see_v cause_n iu._n and_o whereas_o the_o piety_n of_o family_n and_o godly_a converse_n of_o neighbour_n be_v a_o great_a mean_n of_o preserve_a religion_n and_o sobriety_n in_o the_o world_n and_o lest_o the_o act_n for_o suppress_v seditious_a conventicle_n shall_v be_v misinterpret_v as_o injurious_a thereto_o be_v it_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o say_a act_n to_o forbid_v any_o such_o family_n piety_n or_o converse_n though_o more_o than_o four_o neighbour_n shall_v be_v peaceable_o present_a at_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o a_o license_v book_n the_o sing_n of_o a_o psalm_n repeat_v of_o the_o public_a sermon_n or_o any_o such_o exercise_n which_o neither_o the_o law_n nor_o canon_n do_v forbid_v they_o be_v perform_v by_o such_o as_o join_v with_o the_o allow_a church-assembly_n and_o refuse_v not_o the_o inspection_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o parish_n especial_o where_o person_n that_o can_v read_v be_v unable_a to_o do_v such_o thing_n at_o home_n as_o by_o can._n 13._o be_v enjoin_v v._o and_o whereas_o the_o form_n of_o the_o oath_n and_o declaration_n impose_v on_o person_n of_o office_n and_o trust_n in_o corporation_n be_v unsatisfactory_a to_o many_o that_o be_v loyal_a and_o peaceable_a that_o our_o concord_n may_v extend_v to_o corporation_n as_o well_o as_o church_n be_v it_o enact_v that_o the_o take_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n and_o the_o declaration_n against_o religion_n and_o disloyalty_n here_o before_o prescribe_v shall_v to_o all_o end_n and_o purpose_n suffice_v instead_o of_o the_o say_a oath_n and_o declaration_n vi_o and_o whereas_o there_o be_v many_o peaceable_a subject_n who_o hold_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o conform_v not_o to_o so_o much_o as_o be_v require_v to_o the_o establish_v ministry_n and_o church-communion_n be_v it_o enact_v that_o all_o and_o only_o they_o who_o shall_v public_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n before_o some_o court_n of_o ●ustice_n or_o at_o the_o open_a session_n of_o the_o county_n where_o they_o live_v and_o that_o then_o and_o there_o subscribe_v as_o follow_v i._n a._n b._n do_v unfeigned_o stand_v to_o my_o baptismal_a covenant_n and_o do_v believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n call_v the_o apostle_n the_o nicene_n and_o constantinopolitan_a and_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n and_o do_v renounce_v all_o that_o 〈◊〉_d contrary_a hereto_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o tolerate_v in_o the_o excercise_n of_o their_o religion_n as_o his_o majesty_n with_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o parliament_n or_o council_n shall_v from_o time_n to_o time_n find_v consistent_a with_o the_o peace_n and_o safety_n of_o his_o kingdom_n vii_o and_o lest_o this_o act_n for_o concord_n shall_v occasion_v discord_n by_o embolden_v unpeaceable_a and_o unruly_a or_o heretical_a man_n be_v it_o enact_v that_o if_o any_o either_o in_o the_o allow_v or_o the_o tolerate_a assembly_n that_o shall_v pray_v or_o preach_v rebellion_n sedition_n or_o against_o the_o government_n or_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n or_o shall_v break_v the_o peace_n by_o tumult_n or_o otherwise_o or_o stir_v up_o unchristian_a hatred_n and_o strife_n or_o shall_v preach_v against_o or_o otherwise_o oppose_v the_o christian_n verity_n or_o any_o article_n of_o the_o sacred_a doctrine_n which_o they_o subscribe_v or_o any_o of_o the_o 39_o article_n of_o religion_n they_o shall_v be_v punish_v as_o by_o the_o law_n against_o such_o offence_n be_v already_o provide_v i_o will_v here_o also_o annex_v the_o copy_n of_o some_o petition_n which_o i_o be_v put_v to_o draw_v up_o which_o never_o be_v present_v i._o the_o first_o be_v intend_v while_o the_o parliament_n be_v sit_v to_o have_v be_v offer_v but_o wise_a parliament-man_n think_v it_o be_v better_o forbear_v it_o ii_o the_o second_o be_v think_v fit_a for_o some_o citizen_n to_o have_v offer_v but_o by_o the_o same_o council_n it_o be_v forbear_v iii_o the_o three_o be_v thus_o occasion_v sir_n john_n babor_n tell_v dr._n manton_n that_o the_o scot_n be_v then_o suspect_v of_o some_o insurrection_n it_o be_v expect_v that_o we_o renew_v the_o profession_n of_o our_o loyalty_n to_o free_v we_o from_o all_o suspicion_n of_o conspiracy_n with_o they_o we_o say_v that_o it_o seem_v hard_o to_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v fall_v under_o suspicion_n and_o no_o cause_n allege_v we_o know_v of_o no_o occasion_n that_o we_o have_v give_v but_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o profess_v our_o continue_a loyalty_n but_o desire_v that_o we_o may_v with_o it_o open_v our_o just_a resentment_n of_o our_o case_n they_o put_v i_o to_o draw_v it_o up_o but_o when_o it_o be_v read_v it_o be_v lay_v by_o none_o dare_v to_o plead_v our_o cause_n so_o free_o and_o signify_v any_o sense_n of_o our_o hard_a usage_n i._o may_v it_o please_v your_o majesty_n with_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o assemble_v in_o parliament_n when_o the_o common_a profession_n of_o resolve_a moderation_n have_v abate_v man_n fear_n of_o a_o silence_v prelacy_n and_o the_o publish_a declaration_n of_o nobility_n and_o gentry_n against_o all_o divide_v violence_n and_o revenge_n have_v help_v to_o unite_v the_o endeavour_n of_o your_o subject_n which_o prosper_v for_o your_o majesty_n be_v desire_v restoration_n when_o god_n wonderful_a providence_n have_v dissolve_v the_o military_a power_n of_o usurper_n which_o hinder_v it_o and_o when_o your_o welcome_a appearance_n your_o act_n of_o oblivion_n your_o gracious_a declaration_n about_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n for_o which_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o solemn_o give_v you_o thanks_o do_v seem_v to_o have_v do_v much_o to_o the_o cure_n of_o our_o division_n we_o have_v some_o hope_n that_o our_o common_a revive_a love_n and_o concord_n will_v have_v tend_v to_o your_o majesty_n and_o our_o common_a joy_n in_o the_o harmony_n strength_n and_o prosperity_n of_o your_o kingdom_n and_o that_o we_o may_v among_o your_o inferior_a subject_n have_v enjoy_v our_o part_n in_o the_o common_a tranquillity_n but_o the_o year_n 1662._o dissolve_v those_o hope_n fix_v our_o old_a difficulty_n and_o add_v more_o which_o since_o then_o also_o have_v be_v much_o increase_v be_v consecrate_v and_o vow_v to_o the_o sacred_a ministry_n we_o
world_n experience_n loud_o tell_v we_o that_o clergyman_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o sword_n in_o peace_n and_o quietness_n than_o to_o be_v trust_v with_o the_o sword_n and_o we_o will_v not_o have_v king_n be_v make_v their_o executioner_n for_o we_o be_v past_a doubt_n that_o the_o controversy_n and_o contention_n of_o the_o worldly_a tyrannical_a and_o the_o self-conceited_a clergy_n have_v be_v many_o hundred_o year_n more_o calamitous_a to_o the_o christian_a world_n than_o the_o most_o bloody_a war_n we_o be_v ourselves_o so_o far_o from_o desire_v grandeur_n and_o dominion_n that_o we_o will_v not_o be_v so_o much_o as_o the_o pastor_n of_o any_o but_o consenter_n and_o wish_v that_o the_o clergie_n state_n be_v such_o as_o neither_o starve_a or_o straiten_v the_o diligent_a labourer_n nor_o so_o tempt_v and_o invite_v ambitious_a worldly_n mind_n as_o that_o such_o be_v the_o seeker_n must_v usual_o be_v the_o master_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v like_a to_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o holy_a doctrine_n which_o condemn_v they_o we_o long_v we_o pray_v we_o groan_v for_o the_o concord_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o whoever_o shall_v be_v the_o bless_a and_o honour_a instrument_n of_o that_o work_n must_v do_v it_o by_o break_v divide_v engine_n and_o make_v the_o primitive_a simplicity_n the_o term_n of_o union_n even_o a_o few_o plain_n certain_a necessary_a thing_n while_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o magistrate_n constrain_v the_o turbulent_a to_o peace_n and_o mutual_a forbearance_n in_o the_o rest_n we_o be_v not_o for_o cruelty_n to_o any_o we_o great_o approve_v of_o your_o majesty_n averseness_n to_o persecution_n but_o we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o learning_n godliness_n and_o concord_n of_o the_o ministry_n which_o shall_v be_v public_o settle_v by_o your_o law_n which_o must_v be_v the_o chief_a mean_n of_o preserve_a religion_n loyalty_n and_o peace_n and_o therefore_o must_v deep_o resent_v it_o that_o we_o be_v render_v so_o unserviceable_a in_o that_o kind_n and_o that_o well_o mean_v man_n shall_v so_o long_o misunderstand_v our_o cause_n and_o judge_n defame_n and_o use_v we_o as_o if_o we_o be_v the_o hinderer_n of_o that_o sweet_a agreement_n which_o our_o soul_n most_o earnest_o desire_v and_o will_v purchase_v by_o any_o lawful_a price_n in_o sum_n the_o belief_n of_o the_o heavenly_a glory_n through_o christ_n kindle_v the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o man_n and_o teach_v we_o to_o live_v sober_o righteous_o and_o godly_a and_o the_o government_n of_o magistrate_n keep_v all_o in_o peace_n upon_o these_o term_n be_v the_o religion_n and_o state_n that_o we_o desire_v and_o the_o grief_n of_o our_o soul_n for_o the_o present_a division_n do_v call_v up_o our_o thankful_a remembrance_n that_o once_o by_o your_o majesty_n favour_n we_o be_v commissioned_n to_o speak_v for_o ourselves_o about_o the_o old_a conformity_n and_o to_o treat_v with_o your_o bishop_n for_o such_o alteration_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o our_o concord_n and_o that_o your_o majesty_n publish_v so_o gracious_a a_o declaration_n of_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n as_o have_v it_o live_v have_v prevent_v our_o present_a fraction_n yea_o that_o your_o house_n of_o commons_o give_v your_o majesty_n the_o public_a thanks_o for_o your_o heal_a mean_n though_o now_o some_o take_v all_o our_o division_n and_o distraction_n to_o be_v a_o small_a evil_n than_o the_o term_n of_o that_o your_o majesty_n declaration_n will_v be_v and_o if_o ever_o your_o favour_n allow_v we_o to_o speak_v for_o ourselves_o also_o as_o to_o the_o new_a conformity_n and_o to_o open_v to_o the_o world_n the_o matter_n and_o reason_n of_o our_o nonconformity_n we_o can_v doubt_v but_o it_o will_v much_o abate_v the_o censure_n and_o injury_n of_o multitude_n that_o understand_v we_o not_o and_o consequent_o abate_v their_o guilt_n and_o all_o unbrother_o distance_n and_o schism_n and_o man_n unthankful_a dislike_n of_o your_o majesty_n clemency_n and_o so_o far_o as_o god_n by_o your_o majesty_n favour_n shall_v open_v our_o lip_n that_o our_o mouth_n may_v show_v forth_o his_o praise_n we_o shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o great_a thankfulness_n to_o your_o majesty_n and_o to_o pray_v for_o your_o pious_a and_o prosperous_a reign_n and_o that_o we_o may_v all_o live_v a_o quiet_a and_o peaceable_a life_n in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n as_o become_v your_o majesty_n loyal_a subject_n §_o 289._o while_o the_o say_v two_o bishop_n be_v fraudulent_o seem_v to_o set_v we_o on_o this_o treaty_n their_o cause_n require_v they_o outward_o to_o pretend_v that_o they_o will_v not_o have_v i_o trouble_v but_o understand_v i_o be_v still_o the_o first_o that_o be_v haunt_v after_o and_o persecute_v and_o even_o while_o i_o be_v in_o this_o treaty_n the_o informer_n of_o the_o city_n set_v on_o work_n by_o the_o bishop_n be_v watch_v my_o preach_n and_o contrive_v to_o load_v i_o with_o divers_a conviction_n and_o fine_n at_o once_o and_o they_o find_v a_o alderman_n justice_n even_o in_o the_o ward_n where_o i_o preach_v sit_v for_o their_o design_n one_o sir_n thomas_n davis_n who_o understand_v not_o the_o law_n but_o be_v ready_a to_o serve_v the_o prelate_n in_o their_o own_o way_n to_o he_o oath_n be_v make_v against_o i_o and_o the_o place_n where_o i_o preach_v as_o for_o two_o sermon_n which_o come_v to_o threescore_o pound_n fine_a to_o i_o and_o fourscore_o to_o the_o owner_n of_o the_o place_n where_o we_o assemble_v but_o i_o only_o be_v seek_v after_o and_o prosecute_v §_o 290._o the_o reader_n must_v here_o understand_v the_o present_a case_n of_o the_o city_n as_o to_o such_o thing_n the_o execution_n of_o these_o law_n that_o be_v to_o ruin_v we_o for_o preach_v be_v so_o much_o against_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o citizen_n that_o scarce_o any_o can_v be_v find_v to_o execute_v they_o though_o the_o corporation_n oath_n and_o declaration_n have_v new_o mould_v the_o city_n and_o all_o the_o corporation_n of_o the_o land_n except_o some_o few_o as_o taunton_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v utter_o dissolve_v by_o it_o yet_o be_v the_o alderman_n for_o the_o most_o part_n utter_o averse_a to_o such_o employment_n so_o that_o whenever_o a_o informer_n come_v to_o they_o though_o they_o forfeit_v a_o 100l_n every_o time_n that_o they_o refuse_v to_o execute_v their_o office_n yet_o some_o shift_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o some_o plain_o deny_v and_o repulse_v the_o accuser_n and_o one_o be_v sue_v for_o it_o and_o alderman_n forth_o get_v a_o informer_n bind_v to_o the_o behaviour_n for_o break_v in_o upon_o he_o in_o his_o chamber_n against_o his_o will_n two_o fellow_n call_v strew_v and_o marishal_n become_v the_o general_a informer_n in_o the_o city_n and_o some_o other_o under_o they_o in_o all_o london_n notwithstanding_o that_o the_o three_o part_n of_o those_o great_a fine_n may_v be_v give_v the_o informer_n very_o few_o will_v be_v find_v to_o do_v it_o and_o those_o two_o be_v present_o fall_v upon_o by_o their_o creditor_n on_o purpose_n and_o marishal_v lay_v in_o the_o compter_n for_o debt_n where_o he_o remain_v for_o a_o considerable_a time_n but_o strew_v keep_v a_o coffeehouse_n be_v not_o so_o deep_a in_o debt_n but_o be_v bail_v have_v a_o stranger_n of_o another_o land_n come_v into_o london_n and_o see_v five_o or_o six_o poor_a ignorant_a sorry_a fellow_n unworthy_a to_o have_v be_v inferior_a servant_n to_o a_o ordinary_a gentleman_n hunt_v and_o insult_v over_o the_o ancient_a alderman_n and_o the_o lord_n mayor_n himself_o and_o all_o the_o reverend_n faithful_a minister_n that_o be_v eject_v and_o eighty_o nine_o church_n be_v destroy_v by_o the_o fire_n and_o in_o many_o parish_n the_o church_n yet_o stand_v can_v not_o hold_v a_o six_o or_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o people_n yet_o those_o that_o preach_v for_o nothing_o be_v prosecute_v to_o utter_v ruin_n with_o such_o unwearied_a eagerness_n sure_o he_o will_v have_v wonder_v what_o these_o prelate_n and_o prosecutor_n be_v and_o it_o may_v convince_v we_o that_o the_o term_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d give_v in_o scripture_n to_o some_o man_n translate_v false_o accuser_n be_v not_o unmeet_a when_o man_n pretend_v to_o be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n dare_v turn_v loose_a half_n a_o dozen_o paltry_a silly_a fellow_n that_o know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v to_o be_v to_o so_o many_o thousand_o sober_a man_n as_o wolf_n among_o the_o sheep_n to_o the_o distraction_n of_o such_o a_o city_n and_o the_o disturbance_n of_o so_o many_o thousand_o for_o worship_v god_n how_o lively_a do_v this_o tell_v we_o that_o satan_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o aereal_a power_n work_v in_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n and_o that_o his_o kingdom_n on_o earth_n be_v kin_n to_o hell_n as_o christ_n
before_o i_o give_v any_o answer_n i_o shall_v first_o willing_o yield_v these_o two_o proposition_n 1._o that_o a_o infallible_o lawful_a ordination_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v we_o infallible_o lawful_a minister_n 2._o that_o a_o infallible_a proof_n that_o we_o have_v be_v lawful_o ordain_v be_v necessary_a to_o make_v we_o infallible_o know_v that_o we_o have_v be_v lawful_o ordain_v but_o i_o deny_v that_o a_o infallible_a knowledge_n t●at_v we_o have_v be_v lawful_o ordain_v be_v necessary_a to_o make_v we_o lawful_a minister_n or_o that_o a_o infallible_a knowledge_n that_o we_o have_v be_v lawful_o ordain_v be_v necessary_a to_o give_v we_o true_a peace_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o our_o ministry_n the_o former_a negative_a be_v so_o clear_a from_o the_o extrinsical_a nature_n of_o knowledge_n to_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o thing_n know_v and_o the_o posteriority_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o scientiae_fw-la a_o re_fw-mi scibilis_fw-la that_o it_o be_v altogether_o superfluous_a to_o say_v any_o thing_n in_o order_n to_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o but_o the_o other_o be_v indeed_o the_o thing_n you_o doubt_v of_o i_o shall_v offer_v you_o what_o be_v upon_o my_o own_o understanding_n and_o what_o it_o be_v that_o persuade_v i_o to_o take_v the_o negative_a part_n and_o my_o reason_n be_v this_o i_o do_v therefore_o think_v that_o a_o infallible_a knowledge_n that_o his_o ordainer_n have_v full_a authority_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o give_v a_o man_n true_a peace_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o ministry_n because_o true_a peace_n according_a to_o gospel_n equity_n be_v not_o found_v upon_o exactness_n but_o upon_o utmost_a diligence_n and_o sincere_a endeavour_n and_o particular_o in_o point_n of_o knowledge_n or_o in_o the_o question_n what_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o know_v true_a peace_n be_v not_o found_v upon_o exact_a or_o infallible_a knowledge_n but_o upon_o a_o utmost_a diligence_n or_o sincere_a endeavour_n to_o know_v and_o therefore_o if_o we_o can_v but_o true_o say_v that_o we_o do_v use_v our_o utmost_a diligence_n to_o know_v we_o have_v the_o foundation_n of_o true_a peace_n though_o we_o be_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n in_o much_o ignorance_n about_o the_o thing_n we_o inquire_v after_o and_o to_o the_o question_n in_o hand_n if_o we_o can_v true_o say_v that_o we_o have_v use_v our_o utmost_a endeavour_n to_o know_v whether_o our_o ordainer_n have_v full_a power_n to_o ordain_v we_o may_v have_v true_a peace_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o our_o ministry_n though_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o can_v infallible_o prove_v and_o by_o consequence_n can_v infallible_o know_v that_o they_o have_v any_o such_o authority_n true_a peace_n according_a to_o gospel_n measure_n very_o well_o agree_v with_o inculpable_a ignorance_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v if_o it_o be_v not_o thus_o in_o óther_n thing_n i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o any_o man_n can_v with_o peace_n of_o conscience_n enjoy_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o call_v their_o inheritance_n for_o it_o can_v never_o be_v infallible_o prove_v nor_o they_o by_o consequence_n infallible_o know_v that_o they_o have_v just_o right_o and_o title_n to_o they_o if_o they_o be_v not_o lawful_o beget_v they_o have_v no_o just_a claim_n to_o their_o inheritance_n now_o if_o they_o do_v not_o or_o indeed_o can_v infallible_o know_v that_o they_o have_v be_v lawful_o beget_v they_o can_v know_v infallible_o that_o they_o have_v a_o just_a claim_n to_o their_o inheritance_n but_o they_o can_v never_o come_v to_o a_o infallible_a knowledge_n that_o they_o have_v be_v lawful_o beget_v and_o by_o consequence_n upon_o such_o principle_n as_o these_o can_v never_o with_o peace_n of_o conscience_n enjoy_v that_o which_o all_o man_n usual_o call_v their_o due_a inheritance_n and_o i_o conceive_v upon_o the_o same_o ground_n the_o levite_n and_o jewish_a priesthood_n can_v never_o with_o any_o peace_n of_o conscience_n have_v exercise_v their_o sacred_a office_n in_o regard_n they_o can_v never_o come_v to_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n that_o they_o do_v descend_v from_o aaron_n upon_o which_o account_n only_o they_o have_v their_o just_a claim_n to_o those_o holy_a employment_n yea_o and_o all_o the_o prince_n in_o the_o world_n who_o derive_v by_o dissent_v their_o title_n to_o their_o crown_n will_v upon_o such_o a_o principle_n as_o this_o fit_a either_o very_o loose_a or_o with_o little_a ease_n in_o their_o imperial_a chair_n be_v never_o able_a upon_o infallible_a proof_n to_o make_v good_a that_o they_o be_v the_o true_a legitimate_a heir_n to_o their_o predecessor_n which_o consideration_n a_o posterioris_fw-la as_o the_o argument_n allege_v do_v a_o priori_fw-la over-rule_v my_o judgement_n to_o determine_v that_o a_o infallible_a knowledge_n that_o our_o ordainer_n have_v full_a authority_n to_o ordain_v be_v not_o necessary_a to_o give_v we_o true_a peace_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o our_o ministry_n which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n intend_v at_o the_o present_a by_o your_o fellow-labourer_n and_o enquirer_n after_o truth_n m._n johnson_n wamborn_n decemb._n 26._o 1653._o numb_a iii_o letter_n between_o mr._n baxter_n and_o mr._n lamb_n mr._n lambe_n letter_n to_o mr._n baxter_n sir_n perhaps_o my_o boldness_n may_v seem_v much_o in_o this_o address_n to_o one_o unknown_a by_o face_n but_o want_v of_o that_o be_v no_o sufficient_a plea_n to_o restrain_v i_o know_v it_o be_v no_o impediment_n to_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n these_o line_n be_v write_v out_o of_o much_o affliction_n of_o heart_n and_o in_o many_o tear_n which_o have_v run_v over_o at_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n many_o a_o time_n about_o the_o case_n present_v the_o reason_n of_o my_o address_n to_o you_o rather_o than_o any_o other_o be_v because_o of_o some_o converse_n i_o have_v have_v with_o your_o write_n whereby_o i_o judge_v you_o to_o have_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o learned_a to_o speak_v a_o word_n in_o season_n be_v experience_v yourself_o in_o spiritual_a affair_n and_o temptation_n the_o immediate_a cause_n of_o this_o address_n be_v my_o read_v your_o last_o direction_n in_o the_o book_n of_o get_v and_o keep_v peace_n and_o comfort_n the_o case_n be_v i_o only_o as_o it_o be_v the_o case_n of_o one_o who_o be_v myself_o in_o the_o dear_a relation_n of_o a_o husband_n it_o be_v a_o unusual_a one_o and_o therefore_o will_v require_v i_o doubt_v you_o more_o pain_n to_o reach_v it_o and_o so_o be_v the_o more_o boldness_n in_o i_o but_o from_o you_o will_v be_v the_o more_o service_n to_o christ_n jesus_n if_o you_o engage_v in_o it_o i_o will_v be_v brief_a but_o must_v of_o necessity_n declare_v circumstance_n this_o dear_a husband_n of_o i_o mr._n lamb_n be_v one_o that_o have_v be_v devote_v to_o god_n fear_n from_o his_o youth_n up_o and_o have_v desire_v exceed_o and_o delight_v great_o to_o serve_v christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n the_o ministry_n he_o be_v nourish_v and_o breed_v up_o in_o be_v mr._n john_n goodwin_n for_o twelve_o or_o thirteen_o year_n where_o he_o join_v a_o member_n and_o afterward_o by_o common_a consent_n and_o prayer_n and_o fast_v be_v ordain_v a_o elder_a over_o that_o flock_n and_o do_v labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n then_o with_o great_a delight_n strive_v to_o adorn_v the_o gospel_n in_o all_o act_n of_o love_n righteousness_n and_o mercy_n go_v on_o thus_o with_o joy_n about_o five_o year_n ago_o the_o great_a controversion_n of_o baptism_n have_v some_o access_n into_o his_o judgement_n through_o the_o mean_n of_o another_o member_n of_o that_o body_n mr._n allen_n a_o very_a holy_a and_o good_a man_n who_o have_v have_v long_a doubt_n about_o infant_n baptism_n be_v carry_v to_o the_o other_o by_o mean_n of_o mr._n fisher_n since_o quaker_n by_o these_o argument_n present_v mr._n lamb_n be_v take_v in_o his_o judgement_n and_o in_o conscience_n of_o his_o duty_n do_v practice_n according_o not_o think_v then_o but_o still_o to_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n notwithstanding_o but_o then_o sudden_o be_v lead_v far_o namely_o to_o love_v the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n and_o find_v not_o where_o to_o find_v any_o society_n in_o that_o engagement_n where_o they_o can_v have_v such_o mean_n of_o edification_n as_o they_o have_v leave_v they_o be_v induce_v to_o join_v in_o a_o body_n with_o some_o other_o about_o twenty_o that_o come_v off_o by_o their_o mean_n from_o the_o same_o fellowship_n and_o so_o for_o five_o year_n have_v go_v on_o till_o there_o be_v a_o addition_n of_o about_o a_o hundred_o pray_v sir_n pardon_v my_o trouble_v of_o you_o with_o this_o story_n but_o that_o which_o follow_v not_o so_o well_o be_v understand_v without_o it_o which_o be_v that_o now_o about_o nine_o month_n last_o pass_v by_o some_o experience_n and_o sight_n of_o the_o fault_n of_o some_o particular_o that_o of_o fisher_n and_o
disrelish_v the_o practice_n and_o assertion_n of_o some_o in_o unchurch_v all_o beside_o themselves_o he_o begin_v to_o be_v provoke_v and_o press_v much_o in_o spirit_n to_o consider_v the_o ground_n of_o separate_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o baptism_n and_o in_o that_o survey_n still_o their_o weakness_n which_o appear_v the_o more_o by_o read_v you_o mr._n io._n goodwin_n and_o homes_n book_n of_o baptism_n beget_v in_o he_o not_o only_o a_o sight_n of_o weakness_n in_o his_o ground_n about_o separate_a but_o weaken_v his_o confidence_n as_o to_o the_o oppose_a of_o infant_n baptism_n in_o this_o time_n as_o thing_n appear_v to_o he_o he_o be_v free_a and_o open_a heart_a be_v ready_a to_o express_v his_o thought_n to_o those_o he_o converse_v with_o who_o be_v rigid_a about_o separation_n still_o persuade_v he_o these_o new_a thought_n be_v satan_n temptation_n to_o hinder_v he_o in_o the_o lord_n work_n which_o occasion_v much_o prayer_n and_o fast_v and_o prayer_n that_o if_o these_o thought_n be_v not_o of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n they_o may_v die_v from_o his_o soul_n but_o still_o they_o increase_v and_o come_v with_o such_o light_n and_o power_n argumentative_a from_o scripture_n detect_v his_o former_a principle_n as_o to_o separation_n in_o this_o interim_n he_o converse_v with_o divers_a minister_n in_o town_n as_o mr._n goodwin_n book_n mr._n manton_n dr._n reignold'_v about_o the_o meaning_n of_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 13_o etc._n etc._n his_o thought_n still_o carry_v he_o on_o till_o he_o have_v form_v they_o into_o three_o sheet_n of_o paper_n but_o all_o the_o way_n it_o be_v a_o fight_n with_o temptation_n as_o often_o be_v declare_v yet_o his_o light_n plain_o evince_v the_o evil_a of_o saint_n divide_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o baptism_n although_o it_o shall_v stand_v good_a baptism_n shall_v belong_v only_o to_o believer_n and_o as_o i_o conceive_v those_o temptation_n partly_o occasion_v by_o friend_n who_o out_o of_o their_o love_n will_v charge_v he_o to_o take_v heed_n for_o some_o roo●_n of_o bitterness_n or_o other_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o these_o thought_n and_o some_o carnal_a end_n he_o have_v and_o be_v weary_a of_o christ_n yoke_n and_o the_o woe_n to_o backslider_n will_v be_v his_o portion_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o never_o any_o own_v these_o principle_n that_o forsake_v they_o but_o they_o become_v sad_a object_n of_o god_n displeasure_n satan_n sit_v in_o when_o these_o do_v occasion_n great_a distress_n and_o search_n of_o heart_n many_o fear_n prayer_n and_o tear_n before_o temptation_n that_o he_o be_v not_o sincere_a which_o be_v heighten_v by_o one_o thought_n that_o he_o have_v espy_v in_o his_o heart_n when_o he_o be_v amid_o these_o thought_n namely_o that_o to_o break_v the_o neck_n of_o those_o strai●_n principle_n which_o will_v not_o permit_v any_o to_o marry_v but_o to_o those_o in_o their_o own_o way_n will_v be_v a_o freedom_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o daughter_n in_o their_o marriage_n who_o be_v but_o now_o ten_o and_o eleven_o year_n of_o age_n the_o fear_n lest_o the_o have_v of_o this_o in_o his_o thought_n shall_v in_o answer_n to_o this_o argue_v the_o predominancy_n of_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o flesh_n have_v fill_v his_o soul_n with_o great_a distress_n which_o i_o declare_v to_o you_o as_o a_o spiritual_a physician_n that_o you_o may_v know_v the_o whole_a case_n after_o seek_v god_n a_o little_a help_n be_v attain_v in_o this_o and_o he_o receive_v some_o testimony_n of_o conscience_n that_o this_o thought_n be_v not_o the_o move_a cause_n of_o his_o change_n of_o mind_n or_o any_o predominant_a end_n only_o a_o after_o thought_n which_o have_v some_o encouragement_n in_o it_o when_o this_o temptation_n be_v over_o then_o as_o bitter_a fear_n about_o apostasy_n all_o those_o text_n seem_v to_o apply_v themselves_o to_o he_o as_o speak_v of_o a_o evil_a heart_n of_o unbelief_n in_o depart_v from_o god_n of_o be_v cast_v out_o as_o a_o wither_a branch_n and_o these_o attend_v with_o tear_n and_o wound_n of_o spirit_n if_o he_o do_v cease_v from_o draw_v up_o his_o argument_n then_o be_v shall_v have_v ease_n but_o the_o light_n of_o they_o be_v so_o press_v upon_o his_o mind_n that_o he_o can_v not_o forbear_v this_o have_v be_v his_o life_n for_o these_o eight_o or_o nine_o month_n have_v declare_v his_o argument_n the_o people_n to_o who_o he_o be_v elder_a they_o grow_v offend_v and_o disturb_v if_o he_o have_v any_o thought_n of_o return_v to_o mr._n goodwin_n church_n again_o then_o nothing_o but_o horror_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o flame_a sword_n in_o his_o spirit_n be_v not_o that_o a_o ground_n that_o he_o ought_v not_o return_v thither_o he_o find_v most_o ease_n in_o his_o tender_a and_o fair_a entreaty_n of_o the_o people_n he_o be_v now_o with_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o separate_v to_o the_o further_a prejudice_n of_o their_o soul_n have_v a_o little_a ease_n about_o the_o fear_n of_o apostasy_n by_o find_v by_o experience_n that_o his_o soul_n never_o go_v out_o in_o such_o strong_a desire_n and_o high_a praising_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o earnest_n desire_v to_o serve_v he_o in_o his_o gospel_n and_o have_v in_o this_o time_n more_o abundant_o than_o ever_o find_v his_o soul_n empty_v of_o self-esteem_a and_o sense_n of_o his_o need_n of_o christ_n nourish_v and_o cherish_n after_o this_o the_o next_o temptation_n which_o now_o he_o wrestle_v with_o be_v hard_a thought_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o be_v hard_o not_o easy_a to_o be_v entreat_v etc._n etc._n these_o sore_a temptation_n have_v make_v he_o ready_a to_o saint_n say_v sometime_o o_o that_o he_o be_v settle_v in_o his_o former_a thought_n against_o infant_n baptism_n and_o can_v practise_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n as_o he_o have_v do_v the_o other_o to_o this_o it_o be_v suggest_v no_o now_o it_o shall_v be_v hide_v from_o he_o he_o receive_v not_o the_o truth_n in_o the_o love_n of_o it_o etc._n etc._n and_o heb._n 12._o 17._o make_v use_n of_o to_o wound_v he_o that_o he_o obtain_v not_o the_o blessing_n though_o he_o seek_v it_o careful_o with_o tear_n these_o thought_n occasion_v strong_a cry_n and_o tear_n and_o great_a distress_n of_o soul_n yet_o sir_n take_v notice_n that_o all_o this_o while_n his_o now_o argument_n to_o one_o communion_n with_o all_o saint_n as_o saint_n be_v never_o question_v in_o his_o judgement_n but_o all_o admit_v to_o he_o nay_o all_o that_o have_v see_v they_o who_o be_v divers_a of_o the_o re-baptism_n have_v not_o any_o of_o they_o as_o yet_o offer_v any_o thing_n to_o detect_v they_o but_o contrariwise_o they_o have_v have_v their_o force_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o some_o now_o dear_a sir_n i_o hope_v you_o understand_v my_o scribble_n the_o end_n of_o all_o be_v to_o entreat_v your_o help_n as_o one_o that_o christ_n have_v set_v in_o his_o church_n for_o the_o edify_a and_o establish_v of_o his_o member_n judge_v you_o faithful_a and_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o in_o experience_n i_o have_v take_v the_o boldness_n to_o entreat_v your_o answer_n to_o the_o follow_a particular_n 1._o whether_o god_n do_v use_v to_o leave_v any_o of_o his_o servant_n to_o such_o bitter_a temptation_n when_o they_o be_v about_o a_o service_n acceptable_a to_o he_o if_o so_o what_o his_o end_n may_v be_v in_o it_o 2._o whether_o these_o distress_n of_o spirit_n can_v be_v any_o demonstration_n that_o his_o former_a practice_n and_o principle_n about_o restrain_v communion_n to_o after_o baptism_n nor_o more_o please_v to_o god_n spirit_n which_o have_v seem_v to_o be_v prove_v and_o so_o dependant_a these_o latter_a argument_n about_o largeness_n in_o that_o kind_n 3._o whether_o consider_v his_o former_a relation_n to_o mr._n goodwin_n congregation_n from_o who_o he_o withdraw_v upon_o the_o thought_n he_o have_v of_o unlawfulness_n to_o communicate_v with_o unbaptised_a person_n which_o now_o he_o see_v the_o vanity_n of_o it_o be_v not_o now_o his_o duty_n to_o return_v thither_o and_o if_o so_o then_o 1._o what_o shall_v be_v the_o reason_n that_o his_o conscience_n though_o very_o tender_a in_o other_o thing_n shall_v have_v little_a or_o no_o sense_n of_o that_o as_o his_o duty_n and_o 2._o what_o shall_v then_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o when_o he_o have_v have_v any_o thought_n tend_v that_o way_n such_o terror_n like_o a_o flame_a sword_n shall_v pierce_v his_o soul_n 4._o whether_o have_v be_v a_o instrument_n to_o draw_v so_o many_o together_o into_o this_o way_n it_o be_v not_o rather_o his_o duty_n to_o continue_v with_o they_o apply_v himself_o in_o all_o way_n of_o love_n and_o forbearance_n to_o enlarge_v their_o spirit_n which_o he_o judge_v his_o duty_n because_o he_o find_v a_o sensible_a ease_n in_o his_o soul_n upon_o such_o resolution_n
and_o application_n 5._o inasmuch_o as_o he_o stand_v a_o elder_a over_o they_o and_o be_v weaken_v in_o his_o confidence_n against_o infant_n baptism_n which_o they_o be_v so_o confident_a against_o and_o also_o can_v baptize_v believer_n otherwise_o than_o to_o satisfy_v their_o scruple_n of_o conscience_n that_o shall_v desire_v it_o out_o of_o doubt_n of_o the_o defect_n be_v in_o their_o infant_n baptism_n and_o with_o caution_v of_o such_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o their_o take_n it_o up_o so_o as_o to_o denominate_v their_o christianity_n saint-ship_n or_o church-ship_n thereby_o if_o any_o party_n of_o the_o congregation_n can_v not_o bare_v he_o thus_o but_o shall_v separate_v and_o so_o want_v mean_n of_o edification_n or_o as_o some_o say_v rather_o be_v quaker_n than_o so_o indifferent_a or_o as_o one_o of_o they_o say_v he_o will_v join_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o he_o think_v that_o true_a which_o mr._n lamb_n say_v namely_o that_o he_o may_v have_v communion_n with_o person_n not_o so_o baptize_v whether_o consider_v their_o danger_n he_o ought_v not_o hide_v or_o cease_v to_o desist_v on_o his_o sense_n or_o what_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v 6._o consider_v his_o present_a temptatious_a and_o assault_n to_o his_o faith_n and_o sense_n of_o god_n love_n it_o be_v his_o present_a work_n to_o study_v to_o be_v settle_v in_o a_o full_a persuasion_n one_o way_n or_o other_o about_o baptism_n but_o to_o mind_v his_o spiritual_a defence_n against_o these_o violent_a assault_n which_o make_v he_o say_v o_o that_o he_o be_v in_o his_o late_a confidence_n again_o and_o so_o be_v resolve_v to_o study_v the_o argument_n that_o be_v against_o infant_n baptism_n and_o he_o be_v direct_v to_o your_o twenty_o argument_n in_o the_o book_n about_o right_a to_o sacrament_n about_o the_o necessity_n of_o faith_n to_o interest_n in_o baptism_n now_o sweet_a mr._n baxter_n shall_v i_o have_v so_o much_o grace_n in_o your_o sight_n as_o to_o have_v your_o distinct_a answer_n to_o these_o particular_n true_o it_o will_v be_v service_n to_o jesus_n christ_n who_o we_o have_v desire_v to_o serve_v in_o all_o singleness_n of_o heart_n from_o our_o youth_n up_o and_o have_v no_o desire_n in_o this_o world_n like_o to_o this_o to_o know_v his_o will_n and_o do_v it_o who_o love_n and_o the_o light_n of_o who_o countenance_n be_v better_a than_o life_n to_o our_o soul_n have_v no_o design_n but_o to_o serve_v our_o lord_n upon_o the_o best_a term_n who_o have_v deal_v bountiful_o with_o we_o who_o mercy_n and_o faithfulness_n we_o have_v often_o experience_v i_o trust_v it_o be_v of_o god_n that_o put_v it_o into_o my_o heart_n to_o write_v to_o you_o and_o i_o will_v wait_v that_o the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n may_v shine_v through_o you_o a_o star_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n to_o our_o guidance_n in_o this_o night_n of_o our_o temptation_n i_o acquaint_v none_o that_o i_o do_v it_o be_v it_o know_v it_o may_v occasion_v i_o some_o far_a trial_n therefore_o i_o entreat_v your_o secrecy_n in_o it_o my_o husband_n have_v indeed_o sometime_o say_v he_o will_v write_v to_o you_o but_o have_v say_v again_o mr._n baxter_n will_v not_o regard_v i_o and_o indeed_o he_o have_v scarce_o freedom_n of_o mind_n to_o any_o business_n he_o shall_v take_v a_o journey_n to_o worcester_n which_o if_o he_o do_v he_o say_v he_o will_v come_v to_o you_o i_o do_v not_o acquaint_v he_o with_o this_o but_o your_o advice_n i_o know_v i_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o help_v he_o by_o now_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o still_o give_v gift_n to_o man_n and_o do_v continue_v mean_n in_o his_o church_n sufficient_a to_o the_o help_n of_o all_o his_o poor_a servant_n be_v your_o helper_n to_o we_o ward_n with_o crave_v pardon_n for_o my_o great_a boldness_n i_o take_v leave_n and_o remain_v you_o in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n barbara_n lamb_n london_n in_o great_a st._n bartholomew_n this_o 12_o of_o august_n 1658._o i_o have_v enclose_v send_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o mention_a argument_n which_o pray_v peruse_v and_o keep_v private_a sir_n i_o desire_v what_o you_o write_v in_o answer_n to_o i_o may_v be_v enclose_v in_o a_o cover_n to_o mr._n james_n marshal_n in_o friday-street_n at_o the_o half_a moon_n who_o be_v my_o son_n in_o law_n and_o so_o i_o shall_v have_v it_o with_o privacy_n i_o shall_v long_o to_o know_v that_o these_o come_v safe_a to_o your_o hand_n for_o mr._n rich._n baxter_n minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o kidderminster_n these_o present_a dear_a mrs._n lamb_n how_o true_a do_v i_o feel_v it_o in_o the_o read_n of_o your_o husband_n line_n and_o you_o which_o you_o say_v in_o the_o beginning_n that_o unacquaintedness_n with_o the_o face_n be_v no_o hindrance_n to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o saint_n so_o much_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n appear_v to_o i_o in_o both_o your_o write_n that_o my_o soul_n in_o the_o read_n of_o they_o be_v draw_v out_o into_o a_o strong_a a_o stream_n of_o love_n and_o close_a unity_n of_o spirit_n as_o almost_o ever_o i_o feel_v it_o my_o life_n there_o be_v a_o connaturality_n of_o spirit_n in_o the_o saint_n that_o will_v work_v by_o sympathy_n and_o by_o close_v unite_n inclination_n through_o great_a difference_n and_o impediment_n than_o the_o external_a act_n of_o baptism_n as_o a_o loadstone_n will_v exercise_v its_o attractive_a force_n through_o a_o stone_n wall_n i_o have_v a_o inward_a sense_n in_o my_o soul_n that_o tell_v i_o so_o feel_o in_o the_o read_n of_o your_o line_n that_o your_o husband_n and_o you_o and_o i_o be_v one_o in_o our_o dear_a lord_n that_o if_o all_o the_o self-conceited_a divider_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v contradict_v it_o on_o the_o account_n of_o baptism_n i_o can_v not_o believe_v they_o about_o a_o year_n ago_o sir_n henry_n herbert_n give_v i_o one_o of_o your_o husband_n book_n about_o baptism_n which_o when_o i_o have_v read_v i_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o author_n and_o i_o be_v one_o in_o love_n though_o not_o of_o one_o opinion_n and_o that_o he_o write_v in_o the_o most_o savoury_a honest_a moderate_a style_n of_o any_o of_o that_o mind_n that_o ever_o i_o read_v but_o true_o the_o perusal_n of_o these_o argument_n persuade_v i_o yet_o to_o high_a thought_n of_o he_o much_o more_o may_v be_v say_v than_o he_o have_v say_v in_o that_o great_a and_o weighty_a case_n but_o yet_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o none_o that_o have_v say_v so_o much_o in_o so_o small_a a_o room_n it_o delight_v i_o to_o feel_v the_o working_n of_o a_o catholic_n spirit_n in_o his_o line_n nothing_o have_v more_o undo_v we_o except_o flat_a ungodlyness_n than_o the_o loss_n of_o catholic_n principle_n and_o affection_n among_o christian_n few_o be_v more_o void_a of_o they_o than_o the_o papist_n that_o boast_v of_o they_o it_o must_v be_v this_o love_a a_o christian_a as_o a_o christian_n that_o must_v hold_v when_o all_o be_v do_v he_o that_o love_v christ_n in_o christian_n will_v love_v all_o christian_n where_o christ_n appear_v shall_v not_o divider_n fear_v lest_o christ_n say_v to_o they_o that_o castoff_v most_o of_o his_o holy_a member_n for_o this_o opinion_n sake_n you_o do_v it_o unto_o i_o be_v christ_n in_o these_o saint_n or_o his_o he_o not_o what!_o a_o saint_n and_o christ_n not_o in_o he_o that_o can_v be_v and_o be_v he_o in_o they_o and_o shall_v he_o be_v use_v so_o unkind_o so_o uncharitable_o as_o to_o be_v cast_v by_o oh_o dear_a mrs._n lamb_n the_o lamb_n of_o god_n have_v reconcile_v great_a difference_n and_o close_v great_a difference_n than_o these_o and_o his_o tender_a bowel_n yearn_v over_o those_o that_o we_o sullen_o reject_v he_o that_o say_v to_o his_o sluggish_a follower_n the_o spirit_n be_v willing_a but_o the_o flesh_n be_v weak_a and_o that_o send_v so_o kind_a a_o message_n to_o peter_n that_o late_o deny_v he_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v rise_v and_o that_o still_o show_v such_o matchless_a compassion_n to_o the_o weak_a will_v give_v little_a thanks_o to_o divide_v spirit_n that_o cast_v out_o his_o poor_a servant_n who_o he_o himself_o do_v not_o cast_v out_o i_o know_v not_o mr._n lamb_n by_o face_n but_o mr._n allen_n i_o know_v can_v he_o find_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o deny_v i_o brotherly_a communion_n if_o i_o desire_v it_o of_o he_o and_o protest_v that_o i_o will_v be_v of_o his_o opinion_n and_o practice_n if_o i_o dare_v and_o my_o contradict_a judgement_n do_v not_o hinder_v i_o i_o have_v tell_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o rebaptise_v church_n here_o that_o if_o any_o of_o their_o judgement_n and_o practice_n will_v satisfy_v themselves_o with_o be_v again_o baptise_a and_o will_v live_v in_o peaceable_a communion_n with_o we_o they_o shall_v
fit_a manner_n and_o season_n of_o your_o come_n off_o therefore_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o your_o duty_n free_o love_o compassionate_o to_o communicate_v your_o reason_n to_o your_o auditor_n if_o they_o can_v prove_v they_o unsound_a which_o i_o be_o sure_a they_o can_v in_o the_o main_a then_o yield_v to_o they_o if_o they_o can_v then_o beg_v their_o pardon_n for_o misguide_v they_o and_o beseech_v they_o to_o return_v not_o to_o any_o sin_n against_o god_n but_o to_o the_o love_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o universal_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o brethren_n 3._o to_o return_v to_o mr._n i._n goodwin_n church_n again_o i_o dare_v not_o dissuade_v you_o or_o advise_v you_o but_o i_o will_v not_o do_v it_o if_o i_o live_v in_o another_o parish_n where_o i_o can_v have_v lawful_a communion_n yea_o or_o if_o i_o can_v live_v in_o such_o a_o parish_n i_o will_v not_o be_v a_o member_n of_o a_o church_n gather_v out_o of_o many_o parish_n in_o such_o a_o place_n as_o london_n co-habitation_n be_v in_o nature_n and_o scripture_n example_n make_v the_o necessary_a disposition_n of_o the_o material_n of_o a_o church_n 4._o my_o thought_n still_o be_v that_o you_o shall_v preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o some_o congregation_n most_o suitable_a to_o you_o but_o i_o be_o very_o glad_a that_o you_o give_v i_o the_o reason_n of_o your_o trouble_n for_o it_o be_v a_o sad_a kind_n of_o work_n for_o you_o or_o another_o to_o plead_v against_o trouble_n in_o the_o dark_a which_o a_o man_n can_v give_v no_o reason_n for_o 1._o your_o first_o i_o need_v say_v nothing_o to_o if_o you_o have_v ever_o have_v a_o temptation_n to_o thrust_v in_o a_o wrong_a motive_n into_o a_o good_a cause_n it_o neither_o prove_v the_o cause_n bad_a else_o all_o our_o preach_v be_v too_o bad_a or_o your_o heart_n bad_a as_o you_o see_v your_o sin_n i_o hope_v you_o see_v your_o sufficient_a remedy_n 2._o the_o second_o be_v carnal_a to_o resist_v so_o great_a a_o truth_n and_o duty_n lest_o good_a people_n be_v displease_v what_o be_v they_o your_o god_n god_n must_v be_v enough_o for_o you_o if_o ever_o you_o will_v have_v enough_o and_o it_o must_v satisfy_v you_o that_o he_o be_v please_v if_o ever_o you_o will_v be_v satisfy_v tell_v those_o christian_n you_o will_v not_o cease_v to_o love_v they_o by_o love_v more_o nor_o cease_v any_o due_a communion_n with_o they_o by_o have_v communion_n with_o more_o keep_v in_o with_o they_o by_o love_n and_o correspondency_n even_o whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o even_o when_o you_o have_v leave_v their_o separation_n do_v not_o reproach_v they_o when_o you_o leave_v they_o but_o enjoy_v the_o good_a of_o their_o communion_n still_o as_o you_o have_v opportunity_n god_n house_n have_v many_o mansion_n if_o your_o friend_n think_v that_o their_o closet_n be_v all_o the_o house_n convince_v they_o of_o their_o mistake_n and_o confine_v yourself_o to_o that_o closet_n no_o long_o but_o yet_o renounce_v it_o not_o it_o may_v be_v a_o part_n though_o sinful_o divide_v though_o it_o be_v not_o the_o whole_a 3._o the_o way_n that_o you_o be_v call_v to_o be_v god_n high_a way_n and_o though_o the_o church_n have_v many_o in_o they_o that_o be_v dead_a yet_o have_v they_o with_o they_o as_o many_o live_a member_n as_o you_o and_o many_o more_o if_o these_o part_n may_v be_v witness_n i_o will_v not_o be_v a_o member_n of_o that_o church_n willing_o that_o be_v compose_v of_o none_o but_o not_o able_a christian_n though_o i_o most_o love_v the_o best_a and_o delight_v most_o in_o their_o fellowship_n and_o wish_v that_o all_o be_v such_o yet_o when_o i_o see_v a_o church_n so_o gather_v i_o easy_o find_v it_o be_v a_o wrong_a constitution_n and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o christ._n i_o will_v never_o join_v with_o they_o that_o will_v have_v but_o one_o form_n in_o christ_n school_n i_o will_v have_v the_o a_o b_o c_o there_o teach_v as_o well_o as_o the_o profound_a mystery_n it_o be_v no_o sign_n of_o the_o family_n of_o god_n to_o have_v no_o child_n what_o if_o i_o say_v infant_n in_o it_o but_o strong_a man_n only_o nor_o of_o the_o hospital_n of_o christ_n to_o have_v none_o sick_a nor_o of_o his_o net_n to_o have_v no_o fish_n but_o good_a nor_o of_o his_o field_n to_o have_v no_o tare_n flesh_n and_o blood_n have_v entice_v i_o oft_o to_o separation_n for_o ease_n but_o it_o be_v too_o easy_a a_o way_n to_o be_v of_o god_n i_o undergo_v another_o kind_n of_o life_n you_o be_v extreme_o mistake_v if_o you_o think_v that_o you_o be_v put_v on_o so_o much_o duty_n and_o self-denial_n by_o many_o degree_n among_o your_o hundred_o professor_n as_o we_o must_v undergo_v your_o work_n be_v idleness_n to_o we_o how_o then_o be_v you_o the_o straight_a way_n 4._o for_o riches_n and_o gay_a apparel_n you_o may_v help_v to_o cure_v excess_n where_o you_o find_v it_o what!_o a_o physician_n fly_v because_o his_o patient_n be_v sick_a o_o that_o we_o have_v no_o sore_a disease_n to_o encounter_v than_o fine_a clothes_n if_o you_o be_v with_o i_o i_o can_v tell_v you_o quick_o where_o to_o find_v forty_o family_n of_o humble_a godly_a christian_n that_o be_v as_o bare_a and_o poor_a as_o you_o will_v wish_v and_o need_v as_o much_o as_o you_o can_v give_v they_o or_o procure_v they_o that_o scarce_o lose_v a_o day_n be_v work_v by_o sickness_n but_o the_o church_n must_v maintain_v they_o and_o i_o can_v send_v you_o to_o sixty_o family_n that_o be_v as_o poor_a and_o yet_o so_o ignorant_a as_o more_o to_o need_v your_o spiritual_a help_n when_o they_o have_v sit_v by_o i_o to_o be_v instruct_v in_o my_o chamber_n they_o sometime_o leave_v the_o louse_n so_o plentiful_a that_o we_o be_v store_v with_o they_o for_o a_o competent_a space_n of_o time_n never_o keep_v in_o a_o separate_a church_n to_o avoid_v riches_n and_o fine_a clothes_n and_o for_o fear_n lest_o you_o can_v meet_v with_o the_o poor_a i_o warrant_v you_o a_o cure_n of_o that_o melancholy_a fear_n in_o most_o place_n in_o england_n 5._o the_o next_o be_v the_o great_a block_n 1._o if_o you_o gather_v out_o the_o choice_a member_n that_o shall_v help_v the_o rest_n and_o then_o complain_v of_o parish_n when_o you_o have_v mar_v they_o you_o do_v not_o just_o 2._o if_o you_o will_v not_o do_v your_o duty_n in_o a_o parish_n because_o some_o minister_n do_v not_o they_o your_o excuse_n be_v frivolous_a 3._o if_o i_o dare_v have_v gather_v a_o separate_a church_n here_o i_o can_v have_v have_v one_o large_a and_o numerous_a enough_o or_o such_o as_o will_v allow_v i_o ease_v but_o i_o think_v parish_n work_v the_o best_a we_o here_o agree_v on_o these_o four_o head_n 1._o to_o teach_v all_o in_o which_o work_n in_o my_o parish_n i_o can_v find_v work_n for_o ten_o minister_n if_o i_o can_v maintain_v they_o 2._o to_o admit_v none_o as_o adult_v member_n without_o a_o personal_a credible_a profession_n of_o faith_n and_o holiness_n of_o which_o i_o refer_v you_o to_o my_o treatise_n of_o confirmation_n 3._o to_o exercise_v discipline_n with_o these_o 4._o to_o hold_v communion_n of_o church_n by_o association_n and_o assembly_n of_o the_o officer_n and_o i_o bless_v god_n i_o find_v not_o my_o parish_n such_o a_o dead_a body_n as_o you_o speak_v of_o among_o eight_o hundred_o family_n six_o hundred_o person_n be_v church-member_n i_o hope_v there_o be_v not_o very_o many_o of_o these_o without_o such_o a_o profession_n as_o give_v we_o good_a hope_n of_o their_o sincerity_n and_o none_o who_o profession_n i_o be_o able_a any_o way_n to_o disprove_v and_o this_o satisfi_v i_o as_o god_n way_n and_o many_o i_o hope_v score_n there_o be_v of_o those_o that_o join_v not_o with_o we_o on_o divers_a account_n that_o i_o hope_v fear_n god_n if_o you_o have_v charity_n to_o judge_v that_o our_o parish_n have_v christian_n you_o may_v have_v charity_n to_o judge_v that_o they_o have_v life_n and_o some_o fit_n for_o communion_n how_o tender_a be_v christ_n of_o his_o weak_a member_n and_o shall_v not_o i_o imitate_v he_o yea_o shall_v i_o judge_v they_o that_o be_o so_o bad_a myself_o and_o pluck_v they_o from_o his_o arm_n that_o design_v it_o as_o his_o high_a honour_n to_o be_v admire_v and_o glorify_v in_o the_o freeness_n and_o fullness_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o love_n to_o the_o unworthy_a 6._o your_o follower_n soul_n be_v by_o you_o endanger_v while_o you_o leave_v they_o in_o their_o sin_n will_v it_o endanger_v they_o to_o tell_v they_o of_o that_o danger_n and_o help_v they_o out_o what!_o to_o lead_v man_n to_o holy_a love_n and_o unity_n with_o the_o catholic_n
the_o public_a lecture_n 4._o in_o the_o strength_n of_o god_n take_v courage_n to_o preach_v to_o the_o congregation_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a and_o its_o unity_n from_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 26._o and_o from_o thence_o to_o show_v they_o the_o schismatical_a state_n wherein_o we_o be_v which_o sermon_n have_v bring_v the_o anabaptist_n about_o my_o ear_n from_o other_o part_n four_o or_o five_o of_o they_o oppose_v i_o the_o last_o first_o day_n after_o my_o sermon_n and_o because_o of_o what_o i_o have_v preach_v the_o day_n before_o half_o my_o own_o congregation_n never_o come_v to_o hear_v i_o their_o heart_n be_v quite_o go_v from_o i_o not_o any_o of_o the_o church_n come_v to_o see_v i_o or_o ask_v i_o any_o question_n now_o 3._o and_o last_o as_o to_o the_o present_a frame_n of_o my_o spirit_n and_o state_n it_o be_v thus_o as_o to_o the_o unite_n work_v i_o have_v in_o hand_n i_o thank_v god_n i_o be_o bold_a and_o be_o wait_v on_o god_n upon_o who_o influence_n i_o live_v to_o guide_v i_o in_o thought_n word_n and_o deed_n about_o it_o but_o i_o have_v late_o be_v sore_o trouble_v with_o one_o temptation_n what_o shall_v i_o preach_v or_o write_v any_o thing_n for_o concern_v religion_n i_o can_v endure_v torment_n for_o christ_n if_o i_o shall_v be_v tried●_n it_o be_v not_o for_o such_o faint_a heart_a creature_n as_o i_o to_o meddle_v in_o such_o work_n now_o the_o conscience_n of_o this_o that_o indeed_o i_o be_o a_o poor_a creature_n weak_a both_o in_o faith_n and_o spirit_n have_v make_v way_n for_o this_o temptation_n to_o seize_v upon_o i_o to_o the_o sadden_v of_o my_o soul_n and_o to_o the_o enfeeble_v of_o i_o to_o so_o great_a a_o degree_n that_o for_o this_o two_o or_o three_o day_n i_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n as_o for_o my_o present_a state_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o church_n i_o be_o still_o with_o they_o and_o purpose_n god_n willing_a to_o morrow_n to_o apply_v what_o i_o have_v preach_v about_o schism_n the_o next_o wednesday_n be_v appoint_v to_o debate_v thing_n our_o friend_n call_v in_o the_o head_n of_o other_o church_n to_o their_o assistance_n and_o i_o hear_v those_o from_o abroad_o intend_v to_o stir_v up_o our_o friend_n to_o cast_v i_o out_o of_o the_o church_n what_o the_o issue_n will_v be_v god_n know_v and_o what_o to_o do_v with_o myself_o afterward_o i_o know_v not_o i_o know_v i_o shall_v be_v sore_o beset_v by_o the_o enemy_n but_o my_o hope_n be_v in_o god_n that_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o that_o i_o be_o able_a and_o that_o my_o merciful_a redeemer_n and_o high_a priest_n will_v be_v touch_v with_o the_o feel_n of_o my_o infirmity_n himself_o be_v tempt_v he_o know_v how_o to_o succour_v those_o that_o be_v tempt_v heb._n 4._o 16._o say_v grace_n have_v a_o throne_n and_o 5._o 20_o 21._o say_v grace_n reign_v oh_o bless_a be_v god_n 1_o ephes._n say_v he_o have_v give_v he_o to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n not_o to_o govern_v it_o only_o but_o to_o influence_n it_o with_o all_o necessary_a supply_n to_o fill_v all_o in_o all_o he_o suppose_v while_o we_o be_v here_o we_o shall_v be_v in_o a_o indigent_a condition_n divers_a way_n but_o at_o that_o throne_n where_o grace_n reign_v there_o be_v grace_n enough_o to_o supply_v all_o our_o want_n therefore_o 1_o joh._n of_o his_o fullness_n we_o have_v all_o receive_a grace_n for_o ●race_n and_o because_o such_o poor_a creature_n as_o i_o sensible_a of_o much_o unworthiness_n be_v very_o apt_a to_o doubt_v our_o entertainment_n and_o fear_v where_o no_o fear_n be_v bless_a jesus_n call_v we_o to_o come_v bold_o sir_n when_o i_o shall_v have_v do_v my_o work_n where_o i_o be_o which_o i_o believe_v will_v be_v short_o i_o can_v be_v content_a to_o return_v to_o mr._n goodwin_n if_o god_n will_v like_v it_o and_o that_o my_o reunion_n with_o that_o church_n will_v not_o hinder_v my_o main_n work_n they_o have_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n make_v a_o vote_n to_o receive_v i_o when_o my_o spirit_n shall_v be_v free_a to_o return_v and_o indeed_o always_o have_v manifest_v much_o love_n to_o i_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v i_o be_o so_o clog_v with_o scruple_n about_o popular_a government_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n that_o though_o to_o will_v be_v present_a with_o i_o to_o perform_v i_o find_v not_o mr._n goodwin_n never_o renounce_v his_o ordination_n to_o take_v it_o from_o the_o people_n and_o be_v for_o free_a communion_n and_o say_v will_v join_v in_o such_o a_o unite_n draught_n as_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v now_o draw_v up_o and_o prosecute_v present_o and_o which_o i_o will_v labour_v in_o god_n willing_a to_o promote_v when_o it_o come_v here_o that_o which_o main_o stick_v with_o i_o in_o respect_n of_o return_v to_o mr._n goodwin_n be_v that_o when_o i_o shall_v publish_v what_o be_v in_o my_o heart_n about_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n malady_n in_o england_n i_o shall_v reflect_v upon_o the_o independent_a principle_n exceed_o now_o my_o fear_n be_v that_o my_o relation_n to_o they_o will_v be_v a_o curb_n to_o i_o i_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v but_o my_o eye_n be_v up_o towards_o god_n i_o be_o sure_a i_o have_v reap_v benefit_n by_o your_o counsel_n and_o hope_v i_o have_v have_v a_o interest_n in_o your_o prayer_n which_o i_o still_o beg_v be_v confident_a god_n will_v hear_v you_o sir_n the_o lord_n preserve_v your_o life_n and_o bless_v your_o labour_n i_o hope_v it_o will_v not_o be_v long_o ere_o i_o shall_v hear_v from_o you_o who_o be_o your_o affectionate_a friend_n and_o brother_n in_o christ_n jesus_n tho._n lamb_n from_o my_o house_n in_o great_a st._n bartholomew_n my_o wife_n present_v her_o love_n with_o many_o thanks_o to_o you_o to_o his_o very_a worthy_a friend_n mr._n r._n baxter_n preacher_n of_o god_n word_n at_o kidderminster_n in_o worcestershire_n dear_a brother_n if_o i_o understand_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o way_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o can_v perceive_v by_o the_o effect_n below_o what_o soul_n the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n do_v shine_v upon_o you_o owe_v much_o to_o his_o love_n and_o be_v use_v by_o he_o as_o he_o use_v the_o dear_a of_o his_o own_o what_o a_o mercy_n be_v his_o illumination_n and_o how_o much_o great_a his_o quicken_n life_n that_o possess_v you_o with_o love_n to_o god_n and_o man_n o_o do_v we_o but_o know_v when_o we_o feel_v one_o spark_n of_o love_n to_o god_n and_o his_o servant_n in_o our_o soul_n from_o what_o a_o infinite_a love_n it_o come_v and_o to_o what_o it_o tend_v and_o what_o it_o signify_v sure_o there_o will_v be_v more_o study_v comparative_o for_o charity_n that_o edifi_v than_o for_o the_o knowledge_n that_o puff_v up_o if_o your_o work_n for_o god_n do_v cost_v you_o nothing_o it_o will_v not_o be_v so_o comfortable_a to_o you_o symptomatical_o or_o effective_o though_o i_o confess_v it_o be_v hard_a to_o bear_v the_o censure_n of_o godly_a man_n than_o of_o the_o world_n yet_o the_o ●iger_n the_o trial_n the_o full_a will_v be_v the_o evidence_n of_o sincerity_n in_o submission_n and_o the_o great_a that_o grace_n and_o peace_n that_o be_v use_v to_o be_v give_v in_o for_o encouragement_n or_o reward_n and_o yet_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o that_o your_o trial_n here_o be_v not_o of_o the_o great_a when_o your_o recovery_n be_v like_a to_o procure_v you_o the_o esteem_n of_o ten_o if_o not_o a_o hundred_o of_o god_n servant_n for_o one_o that_o you_o be_v like_a to_o lose_v and_o i_o be_o glad_a that_o you_o give_v your_o censurer_n so_o good_a a_o description_n for_o if_o they_o be_v such_o as_o you_o describe_v they_o i_o be_o persuade_v many_o of_o they_o will_v come_v after_o you_o in_o time_n and_o be_v it_o not_o a_o great_a encouragement_n to_o you_o that_o your_o brother_n and_o fellow-labourer_n come_v over_o with_o you_o and_o so_o your_o hand_n be_v strengthen_v and_o half_a your_o opposition_n take_v off_o and_o turn_v into_o comfort_n for_o though_o i_o never_o tell_v he_o of_o your_o letter_n to_o i_o nor_o you_o of_o he_o yet_o i_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o you_o know_v each_o other_o mind_n and_o way_n and_o yet_o you_o know_v that_o he_o be_v satisfy_v and_o resolve_v for_o catholic_n communion_n i_o pray_v you_o go_v together_o and_o do_v what_o you_o do_v as_o one_o man_n while_o you_o have_v one_o mind_n and_o heart_n i_o perceive_v the_o sign_n of_o judgement_n and_o charity_n also_o in_o he_o i_o beseech_v you_o also_o both_o to_o hold_v on_o your_o charity_n even_o to_o they_o that_o be_v offend_v with_o
you_o so_o far_o as_o christ_n appear_v in_o they_o let_v they_o have_v your_o special_a love_n the_o despondency_n you_o mention_v be_v unreasonable_a will_v you_o conclude_v you_o can_v suffer_v before_o you_o be_v call_v to_o suffer_v deny_v the_o bait_n of_o fleshly_a pleasure_n vain_a glory_n and_o worldly_a gain_n and_o live_v sincere_o to_o god_n in_o your_o prosperity_n and_o i_o dare_v say_v you_o may_v bold_o expect_v his_o confirm_v sustain_a grace_n if_o he_o call_v you_o to_o adversity_n i_o have_v almost_o say_v that_o with_o most_o man_n it_o require_v great_a grace_n to_o overcome_v the_o temptation_n of_o prosperity_n and_o to_o contemn_v a_o flatter_a world_n for_o christ_n than_o to_o die_v for_o he_o at_o least_o the_o one_o will_v prove_v you_o possess_v with_o his_o spirit_n and_o a_o heir_n of_o promise_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o and_o therefore_o the_o spirit_n and_o promise_n that_o enable_v you_o now_o to_o live_v to_o god_n will_v enable_v you_o to_o die_v for_o he_o if_o he_o require_v it_o look_v you_o to_o your_o present_a work_n and_o trust_v god_n for_o strength_n for_o what_o he_o call_v you_o to_o if_o my_o advice_n be_v worth_a your_o regard_n it_o be_v this_o 1._o that_o you_o do_v as_o you_o have_v do_v offer_v communion_n to_o other_o church_n but_o forbear_v yet_o a_o while_n to_o join_v yourself_o as_o a_o member_n to_o any_o 2._o that_o if_o you_o like_v the_o proposal_n i_o shall_v send_v and_o mr._n goodwin_n like_v they_o you_o both_o with_o he_o do_v signify_v so_o much_o and_o i_o will_v take_v some_o course_n that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o introduction_n to_o a_o more_o general_a agreement_n 3._o and_o that_o at_o the_o time_n when_o we_o publish_v such_o agreement_n you_o and_o your_o fellow-labourer_n join_v in_o publish_v your_o reason_n for_o catholic_n communion_n for_o i_o thank_v he_o he_o have_v communicate_v he_o and_o you_o set_v together_o will_v give_v much_o evidence_n in_o the_o cause_n but_o i_o must_v a_o little_a while_n crave_v your_o patience_n before_o i_o send_v my_o paper_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o crowd_n of_o press_a business_n but_o the_o sweetness_n of_o the_o work_n will_v draw_v i_o from_o all_o wilful_a delay_n your_o brother_n also_o i_o perceive_v be_v not_o yet_o ready_a for_o my_o proposal_n i_o rest_v your_o unworthy_a fellow_n servant_n rich._n baxter_n to_o mr._n lamb_n jan._n 22._o 1658._o numb_a iu_o letter_n and_o paper_n between_o mr._n baxter_n and_o mr._n allen._n dear_a brother_n i_o bless_v the_o lord_n for_o the_o great_a consolation_n i_o have_v in_o the_o perusal_n of_o your_o paper_n all_o the_o motion_n and_o operation_n of_o holy_a love_n be_v lovely_a that_o be_v the_o way_n of_o god_n hat_n be_v the_o way_n of_o love_n and_o that_o to_o be_v much_o suspect_v that_o quench_v it_o what_o be_v so_o much_o predicate_v through_o all_o the_o gospel_n above_o all_o other_o way_n what_o a_o mellow_a sweetness_n do_v the_o way_n of_o love_n communicate_v to_o all_o the_o duty_n and_o conversing_n of_o those_o that_o be_v abound_v in_o this_o grace_n and_o it_o be_v the_o manhood_n and_o maturity_n of_o christianity_n the_o infancy_n of_o the_o law_n have_v less_o of_o it_o than_o the_o full_a age_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o young_a christian_n usual_o be_v like_o young_a fruit_n austere_a and_o unpleasant_a who_o age_n and_o holy_a experience_n must_v mellow_v by_o the_o growth_n of_o love_n produce_v by_o the_o sunshine_n of_o heavenly_a love_n i_o have_v think_v to_o have_v present_o return_v you_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o reason_n about_o infant_n baptism_n but_o when_o i_o have_v read_v your_o other_o paper_n i_o can_v not_o find_v in_o my_o heart_n least_o dispute_v shall_v in_o any_o measure_n abate_v in_o the_o love_n that_o god_n be_v kindle_v yet_o short_o if_o i_o can_v find_v the_o least_o leisure_n i_o shall_v give_v you_o a_o few_o word_n to_o they_o if_o god_n will_v when_o that_o which_o have_v a_o show_n of_o contend_v will_v be_v more_o seasonable_a your_o argument_n for_o communion_n be_v very_o weighty_a my_o next_o work_n to_o these_o end_n shall_v be_v to_o persuade_v some_o godly_a minister_n that_o differ_v from_o you_o to_o a_o more_o charitable_a judgement_n and_o walk_v towards_o they_o of_o your_o opinion_n and_o if_o i_o live_v so_o long_o to_o persuade_v our_o parliament_n man_n against_o excessive_a rigour_n and_o bitterness_n against_o they_o do_v you_o do_v the_o like_a with_o those_o of_o your_o way_n if_o love_n reign_n in_o we_o it_o must_v command_v our_o tongue_n to_o plead_v its_o cause_n and_o to_o endeavour_v the_o promote_a of_o it_o in_o the_o world_n and_o when_o love_n shall_v reign_v among_o the_o nation_n the_o lord_n shall_v reign_v in_o a_o way_n of_o love_n and_o this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o those_o glorious_a time_n that_o some_o expect_v by_o other_o way_n and_o as_o the_o abound_a of_o iniquity_n and_o the_o cool_a of_o love_n be_v couple_v by_o christ_n as_o cause_n and_o effect_v so_o will_v the_o abound_a of_o love_n and_o the_o decay_n of_o iniquity_n be_v conjoin_v the_o god_n of_o love_n carry_v on_o this_o bless_a work_n in_o our_o freeze_a soul_n and_o in_o all_o the_o church_n by_o keep_v we_o under_o the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n and_o the_o the_o sunshine_n of_o his_o most_o glorious_a love_n i_o remain_v your_o brother_n rich._n baxter_n to_o mr._n william_n allen._n jan._n 7._o 1658._o the_o case_n of_o separation_n quest._n 1._o whither_o particular_a church_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n answ._n yea_o that_o be_v christian_n associate_v for_o personal_a communion_n in_o doctrine_n worship_n and_o discipline_n under_o the_o same_o pastor_n one_o or_o more_o be_v a_o church_n of_o divine_a institution_n prove_v act._n 14._o 23._o titus_n 1._o 5._o 1_o tim._n phil._n 1._o 1_o 2._o 1_o thes._n 5._o 16_o 17._o heb._n 15._o 17._o 24._o and_o many_o other_o text_n quest._n 2._o whether_o the_o parish_n assembly_n be_v such_o answ._n parish-assembly_n be_v not_o of_o one_o sort_n some_o be_v not_o such_o that_o be_v parish_n assembly_n which_o deny_v the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n and_o be_v heretic_n or_o deny_v church_n essential_o or_o that_o have_v no_o pastor_n or_o such_o as_o want_v some_o essential_o of_o the_o office_n as_o visible_a to_o man_n judgement_n but_o parish_n assembly_n be_v true_a particular_a church_n who_o profess_v the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n and_o of_o church_n and_o have_v pastor_n who_o visible_o want_v not_o any_o thing_n essential_a to_o their_o office_n though_o otherwise_o faulty_a 2._o church_n be_v call_v true_a 1._o in_o point_n of_o essence_n as_o aforesaid_a 2._o in_o point_n of_o soundness_n and_o integrity_n as_o a_o sick_a man_n or_o a_o maim_a man_n or_o a_o thief_n be_v a_o true_a man_n in_o essence_n but_o not_o in_o soundness_n in_o integrity_n and_o honesty_n the_o parish_n church_n as_o constitute_v by_o our_o law_n article_n ordination_n and_o canon_n be_v true_a church_n as_o to_o essence_n but_o not_o without_o some_o want_v and_o disease_n that_o need_v a_o cure_n 3._o church_n may_v be_v call_v true_a 1._o in_o their_o constitution_n or_o 2._o in_o their_o administration_n we_o in_o england_n as_o afore_o describe_v be_v true_a in_o their_o constitution_n but_o in_o the_o administration_n some_o be_v excellent_a some_o be_v laudable_a some_o be_v tolerable_a and_o perhaps_o some_o have_v minister_n intolerable_a as_o the_o parson_n differ_v 4._o the_o society_n call_v the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v pastor_n of_o several_a mind_n must_v i_o hope_v hold_v all_o that_o be_v essential_a to_o christianity_n ministry_n and_o communion_n but_o some_o late_a innovator_n and_o corruptor_n seem_v to_o deny_v somewhat_o essential_a to_o particular_a church_n and_o ministry_n but_o these_o impeach_n no_o man_n ministry_n but_o their_o own_o against_o these_o i_o write_v in_o my_o treaty_n of_o episcopacy_n 5._o distinguish_v between_o the_o office_n as_o institute_v by_o christ_n and_o own_a by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o office_n as_o restrain_v and_o hinder_v by_o canon_n and_o by_o law_n the_o parish_n minister_n and_o church_n be_v true_a minister_n and_o church_n as_o describe_v by_o ordination_n and_o the_o church_n doctrine_n but_o many_o canon_n and_o some_o law_n doleful_o fetter_v they_o and_o hinder_v the_o exercise_n of_o their_o office_n on_o pretence_n of_o govern_v they_o but_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v destroy_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o office_n itself_o the_o minister_n have_v all_o essential_a qualification_n and_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n though_o not_o the_o first_o choice_n and_o the_o people_n be_v profess_a christian_n 6._o a_o parish_n and_o a_o parish-church_n be_v not_o
shall_v we_o find_v they_o and_o make_v they_o in_o our_o brethren_n christ_n gather_v and_o will_v you_o scatter_v he_o reconcile_v and_o unit_v and_o will_v you_o divide_v he_o justifi_v and_o will_v you_o be_v he_o that_o shall_v condemn_v even_o they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n and_o all_o for_o want_v of_o delay_v baptism_n till_o your_o time_n when_o in_o christ_n jesus_n neither_o circumcision_n avail_v nothing_o nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o the_o new_a creature_n and_o faith_n that_o work_v by_o love_n have_v you_o mark_v how_o unity_n and_o love_n be_v inculcate_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o that_o as_o omnipotency_n be_v most_o eminent_o engrave_v upon_o the_o creation_n and_o wisdom_n on_o the_o law_n of_o god_n so_o goodness_n be_v most_o eminent_o engrave_v on_o the_o redeemer_n and_o that_o in_o this_o glass_n the_o father_n in_o his_o love_n and_o goodness_n must_v be_v know_v and_o hereby_o the_o impress_n and_o image_n of_o love_n must_v be_v make_v upon_o our_o soul_n they_o that_o be_v least_o for_o love_n and_o holy_a unity_n be_v least_o like_a god_n and_o least_o for_o he_o and_o most_o like_o his_o enemy_n and_o we_o 18._o christ_n be_v both_o king_n prophet_n and_o priest_n and_o no_o one_o be_v sincere_o relate_v unto_o he_o in_o any_o of_o these_o respect_n but_o be_v relate_v to_o he_o in_o all_o and_o ergo_fw-la all_o christian_n be_v to_o be_v under_o his_o church-government_n and_o protection_n in_o his_o family_n as_o well_o as_o under_o his_o teach_v if_o they_o be_v by_o your_o own_o confession_n fellow_n citizen_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o household_n of_o god_n do_v not_o disfranchise_v they_o nor_o deny_v they_o their_o privilege_n 19_o will_v not_o your_o principle_n lead_v to_o narrowness_n of_o holy_a charity_n in_o communication_n of_o worldly_a good_n and_o destroy_v christian_a communion_n in_o this_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o fellowship_n in_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o prayer_n not_o through_o level_v but_o charitable_a community_n have_v all_o thing_n as_o common_a sure_o you_o will_v refuse_v this_o when_o you_o refuse_v communion_n in_o sacrament_n you_o will_v on_o the_o same_o ground_n think_v that_o those_o few_o only_a of_o your_o opinion_n be_v to_o partake_v of_o this_o special_a communication_n for_o the_o reason_n be_v the_o same_o 20._o contrary_n to_o the_o spirit_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o gospel_n you_o lie_v great_a stress_n upon_o the_o very_a time_v of_o a_o holy_a ceremony_n than_o under_o the_o law_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o be_v of_o the_o ceremony_n itself_o woman_n have_v communion_n without_o circumcision_n the_o male_n in_o the_o wilderness_n do_v hold_v all_o holy_a communion_n even_o in_o the_o passover_n without_o circumcision_n to_o all_o this_o let_v i_o add_v these_o few_o question_n to_o you_o 1._o do_v you_o think_v in_o the_o most_o humble_a frame_n of_o your_o soul_n that_o you_o have_v no_o fail_v as_o great_a as_o you_o suppose_v the_o mis-timing_a of_o our_o baptism_n to_o be_v and_o will_v you_o be_v reject_v for_o it_o 2._o be_v this_o norrowness_n of_o special_a love_a communion_n answerable_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o universal_a redemption_n and_o grace_n wherein_o i_o suspect_v you_o go_v beyond_o i_o 3._o have_v you_o well_o consider_v that_o god_n unity_n be_v the_o first_o of_o his_o attribute_n next_o his_o be_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v one_o god_n and_o so_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v next_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o it_o so_o to_o be_v regard_v and_o maintain_v the_o unity_n can_v be_v destroy_v without_o destroy_v the_o essence_n and_o therefore_o many_o truth_n and_o duty_n must_v be_v put_v behind_o the_o church_n unity_n when_o accidental_o the_o use_n of_o they_o be_v make_v inconsistent_a with_o it_o 4._o it_o have_v be_v the_o common_a frame_n of_o the_o church_n since_o the_o apostle_n day_n till_o of_o late_a to_o consist_v of_o a_o mixture_n one_o half_o baptize_v at_o age_n be_v convert_v at_o age_n from_o infidelity_n and_o their_o baptism_n before_o neglect_v and_o the_o other_o half_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o christian_a parent_n baptize_v in_o infancy_n and_o both_o sort_n live_v in_o peace_n and_o love_n and_o no_o church_n history_n that_o ever_o i_o read_v do_v give_v we_o any_o the_o least_o intimation_n that_o ever_o these_o two_o sort_n disagree_v hereupon_o or_o accuse_v one_o another_o way_n or_o make_v it_o any_o occasion_n of_o a_o division_n and_o will_v you_o advance_v knowledge_n and_o holiness_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o advance_v uncharitableness_n and_o division_n 5._o bethink_v you_o with_o sobriety_n as_o before_o the_o lord_n if_o you_o have_v live_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o second_o three_o four_o five_o six_o seven_o eight_o nine_o and_o ten_o century_n or_o low_a in_o all_o which_o though_o many_o be_v baptize_v at_o age_n be_v not_o christian_n by_o any_o infant_n covenant_n yet_o no_o writer_n that_o ever_o i_o see_v do_v tell_v we_o of_o one_o church_n or_o one_o pastor_n no_o nor_o of_o one_o man_n that_o be_v a_o catholic_n christian_n no_o nor_o of_o one_o heretic_n that_o i_o remember_v that_o be_v against_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o infant_n baptism_n i_o say_v if_o you_o have_v then_o live_v will_v you_o have_v separate_v from_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n what!_o from_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o your_o communion_n or_o will_v you_o have_v have_v all_o these_o age_n have_v lay_v by_o all_o institute_v church_n order_n and_o worship_n the_o consequence_n of_o this_o will_v rise_v so_o high_a that_o i_o will_v not_o name_v they_o to_o you_o only_o i_o will_v further_o ask_v you_o 6._o if_o you_o think_v their_o baptism_n a_o nullity_n and_o consequent_o the_o institute_v church_n ministry_n order_n sacrament_n nullity_n that_o be_v use_v in_o all_o those_o age_n the_o seven_o eight_o nine_o ten_o etc._n etc._n when_o almost_o none_o but_o such_o as_o be_v baptize_v in_o infancy_n be_v church_n member_n how_o far_o then_o do_v you_o differ_v from_o the_o seeker_n that_o tell_v we_o all_o these_o be_v lose_v in_o the_o apostasy_n 2._o and_o how_o easy_o will_v a_o papist_n trample_v you_o in_o the_o dirt_n and_o laugh_v you_o to_o scorn_v when_o he_o put_v you_o to_o prove_v successive_a church_n and_o ordinance_n and_o ministry_n 3._o and_o what_o advantage_n give_v you_o the_o infidel_n and_o our_o own_o remnant_n of_o infidelity_n to_o deny_v the_o head_n by_o so_o far_o deny_v the_o body_n 7._o will_v you_o have_v a_o unity_n and_o do_v you_o ever_o expect_v such_o a_o thing_n or_o not_o if_o not_o if_o you_o do_v on_o what_o term_n do_v you_o expect_v it_o you_o can_v never_o with_o the_o least_o encouragement_n of_o reason_n expect_v that_o all_o shall_v deny_v infant_n baptism_n and_o come_v to_o you_o these_o late_a year_n have_v give_v you_o as_o much_o advantage_n as_o you_o can_v well_o expect_v and_o yet_o you_o see_v the_o most_o of_o the_o godly_a dare_v not_o come_v to_o you_o if_o therefore_o you_o will_v neither_o come_v to_o they_o in_o judgement_n nor_o yet_o close_o in_o communion_n with_o christian_n of_o different_a judgement_n what_o do_v you_o but_o give_v up_o unity_n as_o desperate_a and_o fix_v in_o your_o divide_a state_n 8._o and_o will_v you_o give_v the_o papist_n disputant_n so_o much_o encouragement_n as_o to_o confess_v to_o they_o that_o among_o we_o there_o be_v not_o any_o hope_n of_o unity_n or_o love_a christian_a church_n communion_n i_o have_v be_v long_o than_o i_o intend_v upon_o these_o reason_n but_o it_o be_v because_o i_o will_v not_o neglect_v you_o but_o some_o one_o of_o they_o at_o least_o may_v stick_v upon_o you_o of_o which_o success_n your_o life_n declare_v you_o so_o honest_o impartial_o and_o happy_o dispose_v to_o love_n and_o peace_n i_o make_v no_o doubt_n and_o now_o to_o your_o objection_n which_o shall_v have_v be_v my_o whole_a task_n but_o that_o i_o will_v make_v sure_a the_o issue_n and_o 1._o to_o your_o first_o argument_n i_o answer_v 1._o it_o be_v against_o you_o and_o overthrow_v your_o cause_n for_o as_o ordinary_o woman_n be_v admit_v to_o the_o passover_n without_o circumcision_n but_o not_o without_o the_o covenant_n and_o as_o in_o extraordinary_a case_n offer_v as_o of_o all_o israel_n 40_o year_n in_o the_o wilderness_n the_o male_n also_o be_v admit_v uncircumcised_a so_o much_o more_o may_v it_o be_v now_o in_o case_n of_o baptism_n 2._o either_o the_o ordinance_n and_o example_n of_o the_o jew_n about_o circumcision_n afford_v we_o argument_n for_o regulate_v our_o baptism_n and_o communion_n or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o you_o urge_v they_o in_o
vain_a if_o they_o do_v than_o they_o prove_v the_o duty_n if_o not_o the_o necessity_n of_o infant_n baptism_n 3._o ceremony_n have_v not_o so_o much_o lay_v on_o they_o under_o the_o gospel_n as_o under_o the_o law_n mercy_n before_o sacrifice_n be_v the_o gospel_n canon_n ad_fw-la 2_o m_o 2._o that_o command_n matth._n 28._o command_v the_o baptise_v of_o disciple_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o it_o command_v thereby_o the_o baptise_v of_o infant_n who_o be_v disciple_n and_o make_v disciple_n while_o proselyte_v parent_n enter_v they_o into_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n according_a to_o his_o express_a unrepealed_a law_n and_o promise_n 2._o but_o suppose_v it_o do_v not_o command_v infant-baptism_n nay_o suppose_v it_o have_v consequential_o forbid_v it_o it_o prove_v no_o more_o than_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n not_o a_o nullity_n 3._o but_o suppose_v it_o have_v make_v it_o a_o nullity_n how_o be_v you_o guilty_a of_o other_o man_n omission_n of_o baptism_n by_o hold_v communion_n with_o they_o when_o you_o may_v at_o your_o entrance_n declare_v your_o dissent_n from_o they_o in_o that_o point_n your_o argument_n will_v lead_v you_o to_o avoid_v communion_n with_o all_o church_n in_o the_o world_n even_o the_o rebaptise_v that_o hold_v not_o all_o that_o you_o take_v to_o be_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n because_o you_o be_v bind_v to_o hold_v they_o but_o when_o you_o have_v leave_v to_o do_v your_o own_o duty_n if_o you_o will_v shun_v all_o that_o you_o think_v do_v not_o they_o you_o will_v abhor_v catholicism_n ad_fw-la 3_o m_o 1._o as_o to_o john_n 3._o 5._o doubtless_o that_o text_n speak_v of_o more_o than_o the_o visible_a church_n even_o the_o mystical_a and_o the_o triumphant_a and_o therefore_o if_o you_o will_v from_o thence_o exclude_v infant_n from_o baptism_n and_o the_o visible_a church_n you_o must_v needs_o shut_v they_o all_o out_o of_o heaven_n but_o christo_fw-la dissentiente_fw-la you_o shall_v have_v none_o of_o christ_n consent_n 2._o it_o be_v both_o water_n as_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o holy_a covenant_n and_o cleanse_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o the_o thing_n signify_v that_o be_v convince_o mean_v in_o the_o text._n but_o how_o one_o only_o as_o a_o sign_n and_o the_o other_o as_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o therefore_o not_o as_o equal_o necessary_a in_o point_n of_o mean_n though_o equal_o command_v alas_o how_o easy_o understand_v we_o such_o speech_n among_o men._n if_o a_o general_n say_v to_o the_o rebel_n i_o will_v spare_v none_o of_o you_o that_o will_v not_o come_v and_o listen_v himself_o under_o i_o every_o body_n will_v understand_v that_o become_v a_o soldier_n and_o the_o military_a engagement_n or_o sacrament_n as_o the_o oath_n be_v ancient_o call_v be_v the_o thing_n here_o signify_v to_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a and_o the_o list_a or_o colour_n but_o as_o a_o sign_n for_o order_n and_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n dispensable_a and_o regard_v but_o in_o order_n unto_o the_o thing_n signify_v your_o argument_n from_o personal_a inconvenience_n be_v none_o ad_fw-la 1_o m_o 1._o do_v not_o you_o startle_v to_o hear_v the_o catholic_n church_n call_v the_o world_n and_o a_o retirement_n into_o its_o communion_n call_v a_o return_v to_o the_o world_n i_o have_v read_v come_v out_o from_o among_o they_o that_o be_v the_o world_n but_o not_o come_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 2._o and_o do_v you_o not_o startle_v to_o hear_v they_o call_v their_o way_n strictness_n and_o the_o other_o looseness_n if_o they_o mean_v a_o sinful_a strictness_n so_o every_o vice_n or_o many_o may_v have_v a_o strictness_n malice_n have_v a_o strictness_n and_o covetousness_n and_o oppression_n have_v a_o strictness_n and_o superstition_n have_v a_o strictness_n but_o if_o they_o mean_v it_o of_o a_o holy_a strictness_n be_v not_o they_o the_o strict_a that_o be_v like_a to_o christ_n and_o most_o conformable_a to_o his_o will_n and_o most_o accurate_a in_o their_o obedience_n and_o be_v not_o love_v the_o new_a and_o great_a commandment_n be_v not_o your_o people_n loose_v that_o be_v so_o far_o from_o holy_a love_n and_o catholic_n communion_n god_n be_v love_n and_o he_o that_o dwell_v in_o love_n dwell_v in_o god_n they_o be_v strict_a then_o in_o oppose_a god_n and_o the_o unity_n or_o sweet_a communion_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v it_o a_o honour_n to_o be_v strict_a sinner_n and_o destroyer_n of_o the_o church_n and_o holy_a love_n let_v some_o take_v heed_n lest_o they_o be_v too_o strict_a to_o come_v into_o heaven_n among_o so_o many_o million_o of_o soul_n that_o never_o own_v any_o but_o infant_n baptism_n which_o be_v i_o think_v since_o christ_n many_o hundred_o to_o one_o that_o be_v there_o that_o never_o be_v against_o infant_n baptism_n whether_o do_v you_o think_v christ_n or_o the_o pharisee_n be_v the_o strict_a when_o they_o condemn_v he_o for_o eat_v with_o publican_n and_o sinner_n and_o his_o disciple_n for_o break_v the_o ear_n of_o corn_n and_o he_o for_o sabbath-breaking_a etc._n etc._n sure_o he_o more_o accurate_o observe_v his_o father_n will_n even_o the_o bless_a rule_n of_o love_n and_o mercy_n though_o they_o be_v more_o superstitious_a and_o strict_a be_v it_o the_o weak_a or_o the_o strong_a christian_n rom._n 14._o &_o 15._o that_o be_v the_o strict_a about_o meat_n and_o drink_v and_o day_n the_o weak_a superstitious_o but_o the_o strong_a do_v more_o strict_o adhere_v to_o the_o law_n of_o christ._n do_v you_o think_v that_o man_n that_o shall_v say_v christ_n die_v but_o for_o half_a the_o saint_n themselves_o to_o be_v ever_o the_o better_a for_o that_o strict_a opinion_n if_o you_o be_v for_o such_o forbid_a strictness_n of_o practice_n why_o do_v you_o not_o answer_v it_o in_o your_o opinion_n about_o grace_n etc._n etc._n 2._o you_o have_v cause_n to_o be_v much_o humble_v before_o the_o lord_n for_o bring_v your_o people_n into_o this_o snare_n and_o misconceit_n and_o ergo_fw-la shall_v not_o be_v guilty_a of_o continue_v they_o in_o it_o nor_o make_v the_o fruit_n of_o your_o sin_n a_o argument_n to_o go_v on_o impenitent_o 3._o so_o great_a a_o truth_n and_o duty_n as_o christian_n catholic_n love_n and_o communion_n be_v not_o to_o be_v bawk_v for_o fear_n of_o danger_n tell_v you_o of_o it_o plain_o and_o trust_v god_n with_o the_o issue_n it_o be_v doubt_n those_o that_o will_v turn_v quaker_n that_o be_v infidel_n or_o near_o rather_o than_o be_v reduce_v to_o catholic_n love_n and_o communion_n be_v never_o like_a to_o come_v to_o good_a if_o you_o keep_v they_o where_o they_o be_v it_o be_v a_o fearful_a thing_n that_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v the_o better_a of_o his_o spiritual_a state_n because_o he_o fly_v further_a from_o the_o catholic_n love_n and_o communion_n of_o saint_n that_o be_v from_o the_o church_n from_o christ_n from_o god_n from_o heaven_n ad_fw-la 2_o m_o your_o communion_n with_o differ_v saint_n be_v not_o a_o sin_v against_o your_o opinion_n about_o baptism_n nor_o a_o leave_v your_o station_n you_o may_v own_v your_o way_n and_o yet_o own_o catholic_n communion_n dear_a brother_n i_o think_v the_o lord_n of_o love_n and_o peace_n be_v lay_v hand_n on_o you_o and_o will_v have_v you_o away_o out_o of_o your_o dangerous_a schism_n into_o the_o path_n of_o love_n and_o peace_n it_o be_v uncharitableness_n and_o separation_n that_o have_v make_v the_o rebaptise_v so_o odious_a throughout_o the_o world_n love_n breed_v love_n as_o heat_n breed_v heat_n the_o christian_a charity_n that_o appear_v in_o your_o life_n i_o sensible_o feel_v draw_v out_o my_o own_o heart_n in_o love_n to_o you_o all_o god_n saint_n will_v love_v you_o if_o you_o will_v but_o turn_v into_o the_o way_n of_o love_n i_o hear_v that_o the_o rebaptise_v in_o ireland_n that_o grow_v to_o the_o reputation_n of_o turbulent_a in_o their_o height_n begin_v now_o to_o be_v think_v more_o peaceable_a and_o tolerable_a than_o some_o other_o there_o that_o be_v late_o in_o the_o saddle_n possess_v their_o prosperity_n and_o unquietness_n o_o if_o day_n of_o persecution_n come_v it_o will_v cut_v your_o heart_n to_o think_v how_o you_o have_v refuse_v communion_n with_o your_o brethren_n in_o day_n of_o peace_n if_o we_o all_o lay_v our_o head_n and_o heart_n and_o hand_n together_o for_o god_n church_n and_o cause_n it_o will_v be_v too_o little_a my_o motion_n to_o you_o be_v that_o you_o will_v join_v with_o we_o for_o a_o brotherly_a agreement_n between_o the_o man_n of_o your_o mind_n and_o we_o the_o article_n shall_v be_v but_o these_o three_o 1._o that_o all_o that_o can_v be_v satisfy_v in_o conscience_n with_o their_o be_v rebaptise_v shall_v continue_v love_a communion_n in_o the_o church_n 2._o that_o those_o that_o can_v be_v bring_v
rector_n of_o his_o parish_n church_n shall_v as_o such_o have_v power_n to_o preach_v to_o they_o without_o any_o further_a licence_n and_o to_o judge_v according_a to_o god_n word_n to_o who_o and_o how_o to_o perform_v the_o proper_a work_n of_o his_o office_n on_o what_o text_n and_o subject_a to_o preach_v in_o what_o word_n and_o order_n to_o teach_v and_o pray_v but_o if_o canon_n also_o be_v make_v a_o rule_n they_o shall_v not_o oblige_v he_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o if_o for_o uniformity_n or_o some_o man_n disability_n he_o be_v tie_v to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o prescribe_a form_n call_v a_o liturgy_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o servile_o tie_v to_o they_o as_o to_o be_v punishable_a for_o every_o omission_n of_o any_o collect_n sentence_n or_o word_n while_o at_o least_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o service_n appoint_v for_o the_o day_n be_v there_o read_v and_o the_o substance_n and_o necessary_a part_n of_o the_o office_n be_v there_o perform_v no_o though_o he_o omit_v the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n and_o the_o surplice_n and_o deny_v not_o communion_n to_o those_o that_o dare_v not_o receive_v it_o kneel_v and_o if_o any_o worthy_a minister_n scruple_n to_o use_v the_o liturgy_n but_o will_v be_v present_a and_o not_o preach_v against_o it_o he_o shall_v be_v capable_a notwithstanding_o of_o preach_v as_o a_o lecturer_n or_o assistant_n if_o the_o incumbent_a pastor_n do_v consent_n vii_o no_o oath_n subscription_n covenant_n profession_n or_o promise_n shall_v be_v make_v necessary_a to_o minister_n or_o candidate_n for_o the_o ministry_n beside_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n and_o subscribe_v to_o the_o sacred_a canonical_a scripture_n and_o to_o the_o ancient_a creed_n or_o at_o the_o most_o to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n except_v to_o they_o that_o scruple_n the_o twenty_o thirty_o four_o and_o thirty_o six_o as_o they_o speak_v only_o of_o ceremony_n tradition_n and_o bishop_n and_o the_o necessary_a renunciation_n of_o heresy_n popery_n rebellion_n and_o usurpation_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o ministerial_a fidelity_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o at_o lest_o none_o but_o what_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v common_o agree_v in_o and_o let_v none_o be_v capable_a of_o benefice_n and_o church-dignity_n or_o government_n in_o the_o university_n or_o free-school_n who_o have_v not_o take_v the_o say_a oath_n subscription_n and_o renunciation_n viii_o let_v none_o have_v any_o benefice_n with_o cure_n of_o soul_n who_o be_v not_o ordain_v to_o the_o sacred_a ministry_n by_o such_o bishop_n or_o pastor_n as_o the_o law_n shall_v thereto_o appoint_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v but_o those_o that_o already_o be_v otherwise_o ordain_v by_o other_o pastor_n shall_v not_o be_v disable_v or_o require_v to_o be_v ordain_v again_o and_o let_v no_o pastor_n by_o patron_n or_o other_o be_v impose_v on_o any_o parish_n church_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o the_o state_v communicant_n and_o at_o his_o entrance_n let_v some_o neighbour_n minister_n in_o that_o congregation_n declare_v he_o their_o pastor_n as_o so_o consent_v to_o and_o ordain_v and_o preach_v to_o they_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o flock_n and_o pray_v for_o his_o success_n ix_o if_o any_o pastor_n be_v accuse_v of_o tyranny_n injury_n or_o maladministration_n he_o shall_v be_v responsible_a to_o the_o next_o synod_n of_o neighbour_n pastor_n or_o to_o the_o diocesan_n and_o his_o synod_n or_o to_o the_o magistrate_n or_o whosoever_o the_o law_n shall_v appoint_v and_o if_o guilty_a and_o unreformed_a after_o a_o first_o and_o second_o admonition_n shall_v be_v punish_v as_o his_o offence_n deserve_v but_o only_o in_o a_o course_n of_o justice_n according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o not_o arbitrary_o nor_o so_o as_o to_o be_v forbid_v his_o ministerial_a labour_n till_o he_o be_v prove_v to_o do_v more_o hurt_n than_o good_a and_o if_o the_o suppose_a injury_n to_o any_o who_o be_v deny_v communion_n be_v doubtful_a or_o but_o to_o one_o or_o few_o let_v not_o for_o their_o sake_n the_o church_n be_v deprive_v of_o their_o pastor_n but_o let_v the_o person_n if_o prove_v injure_a have_v power_n to_o forbear_v all_o his_o payment_n and_o tithe_n to_o the_o pastor_n and_o to_o communicate_v elsewhere_o x._o because_o patron_n who_o choose_v pastor_n for_o all_o the_o church_n be_v of_o so_o different_a mind_n and_o disposition_n that_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n that_o none_o shall_v be_v by_o they_o present_v and_o by_o bishop_n institute_v and_o induct_v to_o who_o godly_a person_n may_v just_o scruple_n to_o commit_v the_o pastoral_n conduct_v of_o their_o soul_n who_o safety_n be_v more_o to_o they_o then_o all_o the_o world_n and_o because_o there_o may_v be_v some_o thing_n leave_v in_o the_o liliurgy_n church_n government_n and_o order_n which_o after_o their_o best_a search_n may_v be_v judge_v sinful_a by_o such_o godly_a and_o peaceable_a christian_n as_o yet_o consent_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o all_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o church_n practise_v and_o humanity_n and_o christianity_n abhor_v persecution_n and_o human_a darkness_n and_o great_a difference_n of_o apprehension_n be_v such_o as_o leave_v we_o in_o despair_n of_o variety_n and_o concord_n in_o doubtful_a and_o unnecessary_a thing_n let_v such_o person_n be_v allow_v to_o assemble_v for_o communion_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n under_o such_o pastor_n and_o in_o such_o order_n as_o they_o judge_v best_a provide_v 1._o that_o their_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n do_v take_v all_o the_o foresay_a oath_n profession_n and_o subscription_n before_o some_o court_n of_o judicature_n or_o justice_n at_o session_n or_o the_o diocesan_n as_o shall_v be_v by_o law_n appoint_v who_o thereupon_o shall_v give_v they_o a_o testimonial_a thereof_o or_o a_o write_a licence_n of_o toleration_n 2._o that_o they_o be_v responsible_a for_o their_o doctrine_n and_o ministration_n and_o punishable_a according_a to_o the_o law_n if_o they_o preach_v or_o practise_v any_o thing_n inconsistent_a with_o their_o foresay_a profession_n of_o faith_n and_o obedience_n or_o of_o christian_a love_n and_o peace_n 3._o that_o their_o communicant_n pay_v all_o due_n to_o the_o parish_n minister_n and_o church_n where_o they_o live_v and_o if_o such_o people_n as_o live_v where_o the_o incumbent_n be_v judge_v by_o they_o unfit_a for_o the_o trust_n and_o conduct_v of_o their_o soul_n shall_v hold_v communion_n with_o a_o neighbour_n parish_n church_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v punishable_a for_o it_o they_o pay_v their_o parish_n due_n at_o home_o nor_o shall_v private_a person_n be_v forbid_v peaceable_o to_o pray_v or_o edify_v each_o other_o in_o their_o house_n xi_o christian_n privilege_n and_o church_n communion_n be_v unvaluable_a benefit_n and_o just_a excommunication_n a_o dreadful_a punishment_n no_o unwilling_a person_n have_v right_a to_o the_o say_a benefit_n therefore_o none_o shall_v be_v drive_v by_o penalty_n to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o christian_n or_o to_o be_v baptise_a or_o to_o have_v communion_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n nor_o shall_v any_o be_v fine_v imprison_v or_o corporal_o and_o positive_o punish_v by_o the_o sword_n mere_o as_o a_o non-communicant_a or_o excommunicate_a and_o reconcile_v but_o as_o the_o magistrate_n shall_v judge_v the_o crime_n of_o themselves_o deserve_v but_o if_o non-communicants_a be_v deny_v all_o public_a trust_n in_o church_n university_n or_o civil_a government_n it_o be_v more_o proper_o the_o secure_n of_o he_o kingdom_n church_n and_o soul_n than_o a_o punish_v of_o they_o but_o all_o parishioner_n at_o age_n shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o forbear_v reproach_v religion_n and_o profane_v the_o lord_n day_n and_o shall_v hear_v public_a preach_v in_o some_o allow_v or_o tolerate_a church_n and_o shall_v not_o refuse_v to_o be_v catechize_v or_o to_o confer_v for_o their_o instruction_n with_o the_o parish_n minister_n and_o shall_v pay_v he_o all_o his_o tithe_n and_o church_n due_n xii_o the_o church_n power_n above_o parish_n church_n diocefan_n synodical_a chancellor_n official_o commissary_n etc._n etc._n we_o presume_v not_o to_o meddle_v with_o but_o be_v it_o reduce_v to_o the_o primitive_a state_n or_o to_z archbishop_z usher_n model_n of_o the_o primitive_a government_n yea_o or_o but_o to_o the_o king_n description_n in_o his_o declaration_n 1660._o about_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n and_o if_o also_o the_o bishop_n be_v choose_v as_o of_o old_a for_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o it_o will_v be_v a_o reformation_n of_o great_a benefit_n to_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n therein_o but_o if_o we_o have_v but_o parish_n reformation_n religion_n will_v be_v preserve_v without_o any_o wrong_n or_o hurt_v to_o either_o the_o diocesan_n or_o the_o tolerate_a and_o if_o diocesan_n be_v good_a man_n
far_o mean_a thought_n of_o my_o own_o understanding_n though_o i_o must_v needs_o know_v that_o it_o be_v better_a furnish_v than_o it_o be_v they_o 11._o according_o i_o have_v then_o a_o far_o high_a opinion_n of_o learned_a person_n and_o book_n than_o i_o have_v now_o for_o what_o i_o want_v myself_o i_o think_v every_o reverend_n divine_a have_v attain_v and_o be_v familiar_a acquaint_v with_o and_o what_o book_n i_o understand_v not_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o strangeness_n of_o the_o term_n or_o matter_n i_o the_o more●_n admire_v and_o think_v that_o other_o understand_v their_o worth_n but_o now_o experience_n h●th_v constrain_v i_o against_o my_o will_n to_o know_v that_o reverend_a learned_a man_n be_v imperfect_a and_o know_v but_o little_a as_o well_o as_o i_o especial_o 〈◊〉_d that_o think_v themselves_o the_o wise●●●_n and_o the_o better_a i_o be_o acquaint_v with_o they_o the_o more_o i_o perceive_v that_o we_o be_v all_o yet_o in_o the_o dark_a and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d i_o be_o acquaint_v with_o holy_a man_n that_o be_v all_o for_o heaven_n and_o pretend_v not_o much_o to_o subtlety_n the_o more_o i_o value_v and_o honour_v they_o and_o when_o i_o have_v study_v hard_a to_o understand_v some_o abstruse_a admire_a book_n as_o de_n scientia_fw-la dei_fw-la de_fw-fr 〈…〉_o praedeterminatione_fw-la de_fw-fr libert●_n to_o creature_n a_o etc._n etc._n i_o have_v but_o attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o humane_a imperfection_n and_o to_o see_v that_o the_o author_n 〈◊〉_d but_o a_o man_n as_o well_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 12._o and_o at_o first_o i_o took●_n more_o upon_o my_o author_n credit_n 〈◊〉_d now_o i_o can_v do●_n and_o when_o a_o author_n be_v high_o commend_v to_o i_o by_o 〈◊〉_d or_o please_v i_o in_o some_o part_n i_o be_v ready_a to_o entertain_v the_o whole_a whereas_o now_o i_o take_v and_o leave_v in_o the_o same_o author_n and_o dissent_v in_o some_o thing_n from●_n he_o that_o i_o like_v best_a as_o well_o as_o from_o other_o 13._o at_o first_o i_o be_v great_o incline_v to_o go_v with_o the_o high_a in_o controversy_n on_o one_o side_n or_o other_o as_o with_o dr._n twisse_n and_o mr._n rutherford_n and_o spanhemi●●_n de_fw-fr providentia_fw-la &_o gratia_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o now_o i_o can_v so_o easy_o see_v what_o to_o say_v against_o both_o extreme_n that_o i_o be_o much_o more_o inclinable_a to_o reconcile_a principle_n and_o whereas_o then_o i_o think_v that_o conciliator_n be_v but_o ignorant_a man_n that_o be_v willing_a to_o please_v all_o and_o will_v pretend_v to_o reconcile_v the_o world_n by_o principle_n which_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v themselves_o i_o have_v since_o perceive_v that_o if_o the_o amiableness_n of_o peace_n and_o concord_n have_v no_o hand_n in_o the_o business_n yet_o great_a light_n and_o strong_a judgement_n usual_o be_v with_o the_o reconciler_n than_o with_o either_o of_o the_o contend_a party_n as_o with_o davenant_n hall_n ʋsher_n lud._n crocius_n bergius_n strangius_n camero_n etc._n etc._n but_o on_o both_o account_n their_o write_n be_v most_o acceptable_a though_o i_o know_v that_o moderation_n may_v be_v a_o pretext_n of_o error_n 14._o at_o first_o the_o style_n of_o author_n take_v as_o much_o with_o i_o as_o the_o argument_n and_o make_v the_o argument_n seem_v more_o forcible_a but_o now_o i_o judge_v not_o of_o truth_n at_o all_o by_o any_o such_o ornament_n or_o accident_n but_o by_o its_o naked_a evidence_n 15._o i_o now_o see_v more_o good_a and_o more_o evil_a in_o all_o man_n than_o heretofore_o i_o do_v i_o see_v that_o good_a man_n be_v not_o so_o good_a as_o i_o once_o think_v they_o be_v but_o have_v more_o imperfection_n and_o that_o near_a approach_n and_o full_a trial_n do_v make_v the_o best_a appear_v more_o weak_a and_o faulty_a than_o their_o admirer_n at_o a_o distance_n think_v and_o i_o find_v that_o few_o be_v so_o bad_a as_o either_o their_o malicious_a enemy_n or_o censorious_a separate_a professor_n do_v imagine_v in_o some_o indeed_o i_o find_v that_o humane_a nature_n be_v corrupt_v into_o a_o great_a likeness_n to_o devil_n than_o i_o once_o think_v any_o on_o earth_n have_v be_v but_o even_o in_o the_o wicked_a usual_o there_o be_v more_o for_o grace_n to_o make_v advantage_n of_o and_o more_o to_o testify_v for_o god_n and_o holiness_n than_o i_o once_o believe_v there_o have_v be_v 16._o i_o less_o admire_v gift_n of_o utterance_n and_o bare_a profession_n of_o religion_n than_o i_o once_o do_v and_o have_v much_o more_o charity_n for_o many_o who_o by_o the_o want_n of_o gift_n do_v make_v a_o obscure_a profession_n than_o they_o i_o once_o think_v that_o almost_o all_o that_o can_v pray_v move_o and_o fluent_o and_o talk_v well_o of_o religion_n have_v be_v saint_n but_o experience_n have_v open_v to_o i_o what_o odious_a crime_n may_v consist_v with_o high_a profession_n and_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o divers_a obscure_a person_n not_o note_v for_o any_o extraordinary_a profession_n or_o forwardness_n in_o religion_n but_o only_o to_o live_v a_o quiet_a blameless_a life_n who_o i_o have_v after_o find_v to_o have_v long_o live_v as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v discern_v a_o true_o godly_a and_o sanctify_a life_n only_o their_o prayer_n and_o duty_n be_v by_o accident_n keep_v secret_a from_o other_o man_n observation_n yet_o he_o that_o upon_o this_o pre●ence_n will_v confound_v the_o godly_a and_o the_o ungodly_a may_v as_o well_o go_v about_o to_o lay_v heaven_n and_o hell_n together_o 17._o i_o be_o not_o so_o narrow_a in_o my_o special_a love_n as_o heretofore_o be_v less_o cens●rious_a and_o talk_v more_o than_o i_o do_v for_o saint_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o i_o love_v more_o ●s_a saint_n than_o i_o do_v before_o i_o think_v it_o not_o lawful_a to_o put_v that_o man_n off_o with_o bare_a church_n communion_n and_o such_o common_a love_n which_o i_o must_v allow_v the_o wicked_a who_o profess_v himself_o a_o true_a christian_a by_o such_o a_o profession_n as_o i_o can_v disprove_v 18._o i_o be_o not_o too_o narrow_a in_o my_o principle_n of_o church_n communion_n as_o once_o i_o be_v i_o more_o plain_o perceive_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o church_n as_o congregate_v or_o visible_a and_o as_o regenerate_v or_o mystical_a and_o between_o sincerity_n and_o profession_n and_o that_o a_o credible_a profession_n be_v proof_n sufficient_a of_o a_o man_n title_n to_o church_n admission_n and_o that_o the_o profession_n be_v credible_a in_o foro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la which_o be_v not_o disprove_v i_o be_o no●_n for_o narrow_a the_o church_n more_o than_o christ_n himself_o allow_v we_o nor_o for_o rob_v he_o of_o any_o of_o his_o flock_n i_o be_o more_o sensible_a how_o much_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o christ_n th●●t_v every_o man_n be_v the_o chooser_n or_o refuser_n of_o his_o own_o felicity_n and_o that_o it_o li●th_v most_o on_o his_o own_o hand_n whether_o he_o will_v have_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n or_o not_o and_o that_o if_o he_o be_v a_o hypocrite_n it_o be_v himself_o that_o will_v bear_v the_o loss_n 19_o yet_o be_o i_o more_o apprehensive_a than_o ever_o of_o the_o great_a use_n and_o need_v of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o what_o a_o sin_n it_o be_v in_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o make_v no_o distinction_n but_o by_o bare_a name_n and_o sacrament_n and_o to_o force_v all_o the_o unmeet_a against_o their_o own_o will_n to_o church_n communion_n and_o sacrament_n though_o the_o ignorant_a and_o erroneous_a may_v sometime_o be_v force_v to_o hear_v instruction_n and_o what_o a_o great_a dishonour_n to_o christ_n it_o be_v when_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v as_o vicious_a as_o pagan_a and_o mahometan_a assembly_n and_o shall_v differ_v from_o they_o only_o in_o ceremony_n and_o name_n 20._o i_o be_o much_o more_o sensible_a of_o the_o evil_a of_o schism_n and_o of_o the_o separating●_n humour_n and_o of_o gather_v party_n and_o make_v several_a sect_n in_o the_o church_n than_o i_o be_v heretofore_o for_o the_o effect_n have_v show_v we_o more_o of_o the_o mischief_n 21._o i_o be_o much_o more_o sensible_a how_o prone_a many_o young_a professor_n be_v to_o spiritual_a pride_n and_o selfconceitedness_a and_o unruliness_n and_o division_n and_o so_o to_o prove_v the_o grief_n of_o their_o teacher_n and_o firebrand_n in_o the_o church_n and_o how_o much_o of_o a_o minister_n work_n lie_v in_o prevent_v this_o and_o humble_v and_o confirm_v such_o young_a unexperienced_a professor_n and_o keep_v they_o in_o order_n in_o their_o progress_n in_o religion_n 22._o yet_o be_o i_o more_o sensible_a of_o the_o sin_n and_o mischief_n of_o use_v man_n cruel_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o pretend_v man_n good_a and_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n for_o act_n of_o inhumanity_n or_o uncharitableness_n such_o know_v not_o